[go: up one dir, main page]

WO2001062765A2 - Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six - Google Patents

Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six Download PDF

Info

Publication number
WO2001062765A2
WO2001062765A2 PCT/US2000/004945 US0004945W WO0162765A2 WO 2001062765 A2 WO2001062765 A2 WO 2001062765A2 US 0004945 W US0004945 W US 0004945W WO 0162765 A2 WO0162765 A2 WO 0162765A2
Authority
WO
WIPO (PCT)
Prior art keywords
nhc
aryl
oso
con
sch
Prior art date
Legal status (The legal status is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the status listed.)
Ceased
Application number
PCT/US2000/004945
Other languages
French (fr)
Other versions
WO2001062765A3 (en
Inventor
Nigel R. A. Beeley
Dominic P. Behan
Derek T. Chalmers
Frederique Menzaghi
Sonja Strah-Pleynet
Current Assignee (The listed assignees may be inaccurate. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation or warranty as to the accuracy of the list.)
Arena Pharmaceuticals Inc
Original Assignee
Arena Pharmaceuticals Inc
Priority date (The priority date is an assumption and is not a legal conclusion. Google has not performed a legal analysis and makes no representation as to the accuracy of the date listed.)
Filing date
Publication date
Application filed by Arena Pharmaceuticals Inc filed Critical Arena Pharmaceuticals Inc
Priority to JP2001562547A priority Critical patent/JP2004515449A/en
Priority to CA002368447A priority patent/CA2368447A1/en
Priority to MXPA01008618A priority patent/MXPA01008618A/en
Priority to KR1020017010819A priority patent/KR20020015307A/en
Priority to AU64535/01A priority patent/AU6453501A/en
Priority to IL14493400A priority patent/IL144934A0/en
Priority to EP00993678A priority patent/EP1200427A2/en
Anticipated expiration legal-status Critical
Publication of WO2001062765A2 publication Critical patent/WO2001062765A2/en
Publication of WO2001062765A3 publication Critical patent/WO2001062765A3/en
Ceased legal-status Critical Current

Links

Classifications

    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61KPREPARATIONS FOR MEDICAL, DENTAL OR TOILETRY PURPOSES
    • A61K31/00Medicinal preparations containing organic active ingredients
    • A61K31/33Heterocyclic compounds
    • A61K31/395Heterocyclic compounds having nitrogen as a ring hetero atom, e.g. guanethidine or rifamycins
    • A61K31/41Heterocyclic compounds having nitrogen as a ring hetero atom, e.g. guanethidine or rifamycins having five-membered rings with two or more ring hetero atoms, at least one of which being nitrogen, e.g. tetrazole
    • A61K31/41641,3-Diazoles
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D401/00Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, at least one ring being a six-membered ring with only one nitrogen atom
    • C07D401/02Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, at least one ring being a six-membered ring with only one nitrogen atom containing two hetero rings
    • C07D401/12Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, at least one ring being a six-membered ring with only one nitrogen atom containing two hetero rings linked by a chain containing hetero atoms as chain links
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61PSPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
    • A61P3/00Drugs for disorders of the metabolism
    • A61P3/04Anorexiants; Antiobesity agents
    • AHUMAN NECESSITIES
    • A61MEDICAL OR VETERINARY SCIENCE; HYGIENE
    • A61PSPECIFIC THERAPEUTIC ACTIVITY OF CHEMICAL COMPOUNDS OR MEDICINAL PREPARATIONS
    • A61P43/00Drugs for specific purposes, not provided for in groups A61P1/00-A61P41/00
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D233/00Heterocyclic compounds containing 1,3-diazole or hydrogenated 1,3-diazole rings, not condensed with other rings
    • C07D233/04Heterocyclic compounds containing 1,3-diazole or hydrogenated 1,3-diazole rings, not condensed with other rings having one double bond between ring members or between a ring member and a non-ring member
    • C07D233/28Heterocyclic compounds containing 1,3-diazole or hydrogenated 1,3-diazole rings, not condensed with other rings having one double bond between ring members or between a ring member and a non-ring member with hetero atoms or with carbon atoms having three bonds to hetero atoms with at the most one bond to halogen, e.g. ester or nitrile radicals, directly attached to ring carbon atoms
    • C07D233/30Oxygen or sulfur atoms
    • C07D233/42Sulfur atoms
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D403/00Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, not provided for by group C07D401/00
    • C07D403/02Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, not provided for by group C07D401/00 containing two hetero rings
    • C07D403/12Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, having nitrogen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, not provided for by group C07D401/00 containing two hetero rings linked by a chain containing hetero atoms as chain links
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D405/00Heterocyclic compounds containing both one or more hetero rings having oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, and one or more rings having nitrogen as the only ring hetero atom
    • C07D405/02Heterocyclic compounds containing both one or more hetero rings having oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, and one or more rings having nitrogen as the only ring hetero atom containing two hetero rings
    • C07D405/12Heterocyclic compounds containing both one or more hetero rings having oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, and one or more rings having nitrogen as the only ring hetero atom containing two hetero rings linked by a chain containing hetero atoms as chain links
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D409/00Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having sulfur atoms as the only ring hetero atoms
    • C07D409/02Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having sulfur atoms as the only ring hetero atoms containing two hetero rings
    • C07D409/12Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having sulfur atoms as the only ring hetero atoms containing two hetero rings linked by a chain containing hetero atoms as chain links
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D413/00Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having nitrogen and oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms
    • C07D413/02Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having nitrogen and oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms containing two hetero rings
    • C07D413/12Heterocyclic compounds containing two or more hetero rings, at least one ring having nitrogen and oxygen atoms as the only ring hetero atoms containing two hetero rings linked by a chain containing hetero atoms as chain links
    • CCHEMISTRY; METALLURGY
    • C07ORGANIC CHEMISTRY
    • C07DHETEROCYCLIC COMPOUNDS
    • C07D513/00Heterocyclic compounds containing in the condensed system at least one hetero ring having nitrogen and sulfur atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, not provided for in groups C07D463/00, C07D477/00 or C07D499/00 - C07D507/00
    • C07D513/02Heterocyclic compounds containing in the condensed system at least one hetero ring having nitrogen and sulfur atoms as the only ring hetero atoms, not provided for in groups C07D463/00, C07D477/00 or C07D499/00 - C07D507/00 in which the condensed system contains two hetero rings
    • C07D513/04Ortho-condensed systems
    • GPHYSICS
    • G01MEASURING; TESTING
    • G01NINVESTIGATING OR ANALYSING MATERIALS BY DETERMINING THEIR CHEMICAL OR PHYSICAL PROPERTIES
    • G01N2333/00Assays involving biological materials from specific organisms or of a specific nature
    • G01N2333/435Assays involving biological materials from specific organisms or of a specific nature from animals; from humans
    • G01N2333/705Assays involving receptors, cell surface antigens or cell surface determinants
    • G01N2333/72Assays involving receptors, cell surface antigens or cell surface determinants for hormones
    • G01N2333/726G protein coupled receptor, e.g. TSHR-thyrotropin-receptor, LH/hCG receptor, FSH

Definitions

  • the present invention relates to small molecule modulators of G protein-coupled receptor six (GPR6); preferably, the small molecule modulators are preferentially selected for the human GPR6; most preferably, the small molecule modulators are inverse agonists to the human GPR6. BACKGROUND OF THE INVENTION.
  • G Protein-Coupled Receptors G protein-coupled receptor six
  • G protein-coupled receptors share a common structural motif. All these receptors have seven sequences of between 22 to 24 hydrophobic amino acids that form seven alpha helices, each of which spans the membrane. The transmembrane helices are joined by strands of amino acids having a larger loop between the fourth and fifth transmembrane helix on the extracellular side of the membrane. Another larger loop, composed primarily of hydrophilic amino acids, joins transmembrane helices five and six on the intracellular side of the membrane. The carboxy te ⁇ ninus of the receptor lies intracellularly with the amino terminus in the extracellular space. It is thought that the loop joining helices five and six, as well as the carboxy terminus, interact with the G protein. Currently, Gq, Gs, Gi, and Go are G proteins that have been identified.
  • GPCRs exist in the cell membrane in equilibrium between two different states or conformations: an "inactive" state and an “active” state.
  • a receptor in an inactive state is unable to link to the intracellular transduction pathway to produce a biological response.
  • Changing the receptor conformation to the active state allows linkage to the transduction pathway and produces a biological response.
  • a receptor may be stabilized in an active state by an endogenous ligand or an exogenous agonist ligand.
  • Recent discoveries, including but not exclusively limited to, modifications to the amino acid sequence of the receptor provide alternative mechanisms other than ligands to stabilize the active state conformation. These approaches effectively stabilize the receptor in an active state by simulating the effect of a ligand binding to the receptor. Stabilization by such ligand-independent approaches is termed "constitutive receptor activation.”
  • a receptor for which the endogenous ligand is unknown or not identified is referred to as an "orphan receptor.”
  • GPR6 is a 362 amino acid homolog of GPR3; the endogenous ligand for GPR6 is unknown (Song, Z.-H. et al, supra.; see Figure 1 for reported amino acid sequence). GPR6 transcripts are reported to be abundant in the human putamen and to a lesser extent in the frontal cortex, hippocampus, and hypothalamus (Heiber, M. et al. DNA and Cell Biology (1995) 14(1): 25; see Figure 1 for reported nucleic acid and amino acid sequences for GPR6).
  • C. Obesity Recently, our current knowledge of human obesity has advanced dramatically.
  • obesity was viewed as an oppugnant behavior of inappropriate eating in the setting of appealing foods.
  • Studies of animal models of obesity, biochemical alterations in both humans and animals, and the complex interactions of psychosocial and cultural factors that create receptiveness to human obesity indicate that this disease in humans is multifaceted and deeply entrenched in biologic systems. Thus, it is almost certain that obesity has multiple causes and that there are different types of obesity.
  • Chronic obesity is a measurement of the excess body fat relative to lean body mass and is defined as a body weight more than 20% above the ideal body weight. Recent estimates suggest that 1 in 2 adults in the United States is clinically obese, an increase of more than 25% over the past decades. Flegal MD., et al., 22 Int. J Obes. Relat. Metab. -Disor. 39 (1998). Both overweight conditions and clinical obesity are a major health concerns worldwide, in particular because clinical obesity is often accompanied by numerous complications, i.e., hypertension and Type II diabetes, which in turn can cause coronary artery disease, stroke, late-stage complications of diabetes and premature death. (See, e.g., NishinaP.M. et al., 43 Metab. 554 (1994)). Although the etiologic mechanisms underlying obesity require further clarification,
  • Treatment of overweight conditions and clinical obesity via pharmaceutical agents are not only of importance with respect to the conditions themselves, but also with respect to the
  • the present invention relates to small molecule modulators of the GPR6 receptor.
  • the GPR6 modulators have inverse agonist characteristics at the receptor.
  • Figure 1 is a graphic representation of the results of a cell-based cyclic AMP assay providing comparative results for constitutive signaling GPR6 and GPR6:Fusion Protein.
  • Figure 2 is a graphic representation of the results of a [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S assay providing comparative results for constitutive signaling by GPR6 and GPR6 -.Fusion Protein.
  • Figure 3 is a graphic representation of results from a primary screen of several candidate compounds against GPR6; results for compound "AREl 12" are provided in well H6.
  • Figure 4 is a graphic representation of an IC 50 curve for compound AREl 12 against the GPR6 receptor, indicating an ICso value of 0.1501 ⁇ M
  • Figures 5A, 5B and 5C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (IP) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (5 A), water intake (5B) and body weight gain (5C) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
  • Figures 6A, 6B and 6C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (IP) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (6A), water intake (6B) and body weight gain (6C) on non food deprived rats.
  • Figure 7A, 7B and 7C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo admhiistration (ICV) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (7 A), water intake (7B) and body weight gain (7C) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
  • ICV in vivo admhiistration
  • Figure 8 provides a graphic representation of the results of AREl 12 on locomotor activity on rats 16 hours post-administration.
  • Figures 9A and 9B provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (oral-gavage) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake on 24-hour food deprived rats (9 A) and on cumulative food intake on non food deprived rats (9B).
  • Figures 10A, 10B and IOC provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (oral-gavage) of structural analogs of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (10A), water intake (10B) and body weight gain (IOC) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
  • Figure 11 provide a graphic representation of the results of a daily repeated in vivo (IP) administration of AREl 12 rats showing a long-term decrease in body weight in non food deprived.
  • Figure 12 provide a graphic representation of the results of in vivo (oral-gavage) administration of AREl 12 showing a decrease in startle reflex in non food deprived rats.
  • ACTIVE INGREDIENT in the context of a "Pharmaceutical Composition” shall mean a component of a Pharmaceutical Composition that provides the primary pharmaceutical benefit
  • AGONISTS shall mean moieties that activate the intracellular response when they
  • a Pharmaceutical Candidate comprising a GPR6 Agonist can be utilized for
  • weight loss is a component of the disease and/or disorder such as, for example, anorexia nervosa, cancer, AIDS cachexia, etc.
  • PARTIAL AGONISTS shall mean moieties that activate the intracellular response when they bind to the receptor to a lesser degree/extent than do agonists, or enhance GTP binding to membranes to a lesser degree/extent than do agonists.
  • ANTAGONIST shall mean moieties that competitively bind to the receptor at the same site as the agonists but which do not activate the intracellular response initiated by the active form of the receptor, and can thereby inhibit the intracellular responses by agonists or partial agonists. ANTAGONISTS do not diminish the baseline intracellular response in the absence of an agonist or partial agonist.
  • CANDIDATE COMPOUND in the context of the disclosed invention, shall mean a small molecule that is amenable to a screening technique.
  • COMPOSITION shall mean a material comprising at least two compounds or two components; for example, and not limitation, a Pharmaceutical Composition comprising at least one Active Ingredient and at least one other component is a Composition.
  • COMPOUND EFFICACY shall mean a measurement of the ability of a compound to inhibit or stimulate receptor functionahty, as opposed to receptor binding affinity.
  • CONSTITUTIVE RECEPTOR ACTIVATION shall mean stabilization of a receptor in the active state by means other than binding of the receptor with its endogenous ligand or a chemical equivalent thereof.
  • CONTACT or CONTACTING shall mean bringing at least two moieties together, whether in an in vitro system or an in vivo system.
  • ENDOGENOUS shall mean a material that a mammal naturally produces.
  • ENDOGENOUS in reference to, for example and not limitation, the term "receptor” shall mean that which is naturally produced by a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human) or a virus.
  • the term NON-ENDOGENOUS in this context shall mean that which is not naturally produced by a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human) or a virus.
  • a receptor which is not constitutively active in its endogenous form, but when manipulated becomes constitutively active is most preferably referred to herein as a "non-endogenous, constitutively activated receptor.” Both terms can be utilized to describe both "in vivo" and “in vitro" systems.
  • the endogenous or non-endogenous receptor may be in reference to an in vitro screemng system.
  • screening of a candidate compound by means of an in vivo system is viable.
  • PROTEIN in the context of the invention disclosed herein, each mean a non-endogenous protein comprising an endogenous, constitutively activated orphan GPCR fused to at least one G protein, most preferably, the alpha ( ⁇ ) subunit of such G protein (this being the subunit that binds GTP), with the G protein preferably being of the same type as the G protein that naturally couples with endogenous orphan GPCR.
  • the G protein "Gs ⁇ " is the predominate G protein that couples with GPR6 such that a GPCR Fusion Protein based upon GPR6 would be a non-endogenous protein comprising GPR6 fused to Gs ⁇ .
  • the G protein can be fused directly to the c-terminus of the endogenous, constitutively active orphan GPCR or there may be spacers between the two.
  • INHIBIT or INHIBITING in relationship to the term "response” shall mean that a response is decreased or prevented in the presence of a compound as opposed to in the absence of the compound.
  • INVERSE AGONISTS shall mean moieties that bind the endogenous form of the receptor, and which inhibit the baseline intracellular response initiated by the active endogenous form of the receptor below the normal base level of activity that is observed in the absence of the endogenous ligand, agonists or partial agonists, or decrease GTP binding to membranes.
  • the baseline intracellular response is decreased in the presence of the inverse agonist by at least 30%, more preferably by at least 50%, and most preferably by at least 75%, as compared with the baseline response in the absence of the inverse agonist.
  • GPR6 inverse agonist shall mean moieties that can be assessed in vivo by factors other than just determination that the moiety has interacted with GPR6, e.g., when the moiety interacts with a mammal's GPR6 in vivo, there is an observed decrease in the mammal's body weight by at least about 5% within 24 to 48 hours of contacting GPR6 and the GPR6 inverse agonist.
  • LIGAND shall mean an endogenous, naturally occurring molecule specific for an endogenous, naturally occurring receptor.
  • PHARMACEUTICAL COMPOSITION shall mean a composition comprising at one Active Ingredient and at least one ingredient that is not an Active Ingredient (for example and not limitation, a filler, dye, or a mechanism for slow release), whereby the composition is amenable to investigation for a specified, efficacious outcome in a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human).
  • an Active Ingredient for example and not limitation, a filler, dye, or a mechanism for slow release
  • SMALL MOLECULE in the context of the invention disclosed herein, is a non- protein based moiety; for example, and not limitation, AREl 12 is a small molecule within the context of this invention, while the endogenous ligand for a receptor is not a small molecule.
  • any search for therapeutic compounds should start by screening compounds against the ligand-independent active state. The search, then, is for an inverse agonist to the active state receptor.
  • Screening candidate compounds against orphan receptors allows for the direct identification of candidate compounds which act at this orphan cell surface receptor, without requiring any prior knowledge or use of the receptor's endogenous ligand. By determining areas within the body where such receptors are expressed and/or over-expressed, it is possible to determine related disease/disorder states which are associated with the expression and/or over- expression of these receptors; such an approach is disclosed in this patent document.
  • inverse agonists and agonists to GPR6 can be identified by the methodologies of this invention.
  • Such inverse agonists and agonists are ideal candidates as lead compounds in drug discovery programs for treating diseases related to this receptor. Indeed, an antagonist to such a receptor (even if the ligand were known) may be ineffective given that the receptor is activated even in the absence of ligand-receptor binding. Because of the ability to directly identify inverse agonists and agonists to these receptors, thereby allowing for the development of pharmaceutical compositions, a search for diseases and disorders associated with these receptors is possible.
  • GPR6 is expressed in the following areas of the brain: lateral hypothalamus, hippocampus, nucleus accumbens, caudate and cerebral cortex. Given the high levels of expression in the areas of the brain associated with feeding behavior and metabolism, GPR6 is likely to be related to a variety of disorders and diseases related to abnormal food intake and/or metabolism, e.g., clinical obesity.
  • G protein receptor When a G protein receptor becomes constitutively active, it binds to a G protein (for example Gq, Gs, Gi, Go) and stimulates the binding of GTP to the G protein. The G protein then acts as a GTPase and slowly hydrolyzes the GTP to GDP, whereby the receptor, under normal conditions, becomes deactivated. However, constitutively activated receptors continue to exchange GDP to GTP.
  • a non-hydrolyzable analog of GTP, [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S can be used to monitor enhanced binding to membranes which express constitutively activated receptors. It is reported that [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S can be used to monitor G protein coupling to membranes in the absence and presence of ligand. An example of this monitoring, among other examples well-known and available to those in the art, was reported by Traynor and
  • this preferred use of this assay system is for initial screening of candidate compounds because the system is genetically applicable to all G protein-coupled receptors regardless of the particular G protein that interacts with the intracellular domain of the receptor.
  • candidate compounds are identified using the "generic" G protein-coupled receptor assay (i.e. an assay to select compounds that are agonists, partial agonists, or inverse agonists), further screemng to confirm that the compounds have interacted at the receptor site is preferred.
  • a compound identified by the "generic” assay may not bind to the receptor, but may instead merely "uncouple” the G protein from the intracellular domain.
  • Gs stimulates the enzyme adenylyl cyclase (Gi, on the other hand, inhibits this enzyme).
  • Adenylyl cyclase catalyzes the conversion of ATP to cAMP; thus, assays that detect cAMP can be utilized, for example and not limitation, cell-based cAMP assay, to determine if a candidate compound is an inverse agonist to the receptor (i.e., such a compound which contacts the receptor would decrease the levels of cAMP relative to the uncontacted receptor).
  • a candidate compound is an inverse agonist to the receptor (i.e., such a compound which contacts the receptor would decrease the levels of cAMP relative to the uncontacted receptor).
  • cyclase-based assays can be used to further screen those compounds selected from an agonist and/or antagonist competitive binding assay.
  • an endogenous, constitutively activated orphan GPCRs such as GPR6, for use in screening of candidate compounds for the direct identification of inverse agonists, agonists and partial agonists, provides a unique challenge in that, by definition, the endogenous receptor is active even in the absence of an endogenous ligand bound thereto.
  • an approach be utilized that can enhance such differentiation.
  • a preferred approach is the use of a GPCR Fusion Protein.
  • an endogenous orphan GPCR is constitutively activate, using the assay techniques set forth above (as well as others), it is possible to determine the predominant G protein that couples with the endogenous GPCR. Coupling of the G protein to the GPCR provides a signaling pathway that can be assessed. Because it is most preferred that screening take place by use of a mammalian expression system, such a system will be expected to have endogenous G protein therein. Thus, by definition, in such a system, the endogenous, constitutively active orphan GPCR will continuously signal.
  • this signal be enhanced such that in the presence of, e.g., an inverse agonist to the receptor, it is more likely that one will be able to more readily differentiate, particularly in the context of screening, between the receptor when it is contacted with the inverse agonist.
  • the GPCR Fusion Protein is intended to enhance the efficacy of G protein coupling with the endogenous GPCR.
  • the GPCR Fusion Protein appears to be important for screening with an endogenous, constitutively activated GPCR because such an approach increases the signal that is most preferably utilized in such screening techniques. This is important in facilitating a significant "signal to noise" ratio. A significant ratio is preferred for the screening of candidate compounds as disclosed herein.
  • GPCR Fusion Protein The construction of a construct useful for expression of a GPCR Fusion Protein is within the purview of those having ordinary skill in the art. Commercially available expression vectors and systems offer a variety of approaches that can fit the particular needs of an investigator.
  • the criteria of importance for such a GPCR Fusion Protein construct is that the endogenous GPCR sequence and the G protein sequence both be in-frame (preferably, the sequence for the endogenous GPCR is upstream of the G protein sequence) and that the "stop" codon of the GPCR must be deleted or replaced such that upon expression of the GPCR, the G protein can also be expressed.
  • the GPCR can be linked directly to the G protein, or there can be spacer residues between the two (preferably, no more than about 12, although this number can be readily ascertained by one of ordinary skill in the art).
  • the results are substantially the same; however, there is a preference (based upon convenience) for use of a spacer in that some restriction sites that are not used will, upon expression, effectively, become a spacer.
  • the G protein that couples to the endogenous GPCR will have been identified prior to the creation of the GPCR Fusion Protein construct. Because there are only a few G proteins that have been identified, it is preferred that a construct comprising the sequence of the G protein (i.e., a universal G protein construct) be available for insertion of an endogenous GPCR sequence therein; this provides for efficiency in the context of large-scale screening of a variety of different endogenous
  • Candidate compounds selected for further development as active ingredients can be formulated into pharmaceutical compositions using techniques well known to those in the art. Suitable pharmaceutically-acceptable carriers are available to those in the art; for example, see Remington's Pharmaceutical Sciences, 16 th Edition, 1980, Mack Publishing Co., (Oslo et al., eds.).
  • the expression vector comprising GPR6 cDNA was generously supplied by Brian
  • the vector utilized for GPR6 was pRcCMV (the coding
  • reaction tubes were prepared (the proportions to follow for each tube are per plate): tube A
  • DNA e.g., pCMV vector; pCMV vector GPR6 cDNA, pCMV
  • Tubes A and B were then admixed by inversions (several times), followed by incubation at
  • transfection mixture The admixture is referred to as the "transfection mixture”. Plated 293 cells were washed with IX PBS, followed by addition of 10ml serum free DMEM. 2.4ml of the transfection mixture was then added to the cells, followed by
  • the pcDNA3.1(-) vector contains a variety of well-known
  • the sequence for the GPCR be upstream and in-frame with that of the G protein.
  • GPR6-Gs ⁇ Fusion Protein construct was made as follows: primers utilized were as
  • the sense and anti-sense primers also contained restriction sites for Xbal and Kpnl, respectively. These restriction sites are available upstream of the HindHI site in the pcDNA3.1(-) vector. PCR was then utilized to secure the respective receptor sequences for fusion within the
  • GPR6 was added to separate tubes containing 2ul of each primer (sense and anti-sense), 3uL of
  • GPR6:Gs ⁇ -Fusion Protein was sequenced and made available for the direct identification of
  • a Flash PlateTM Adenylyl Cyclase kit (New England Nuclear; Cat. No. SMP004A) designed for cell-based assays can be modified for use with crude plasma membranes.
  • the Flash Plate wells can contain a scintillant coating that also contains a specific antibody recognizing cAMP.
  • the cAMP generated in the wells can be quantitated by a direct competition for binding of radioactive cAMP tracer to the cAMP antibody.
  • the following serves as a protocol for the measurement of changes in cAMP levels in whole cells that express receptors, e.g. GPR6 or GPR6:Gs ⁇ -Fusion Protein.
  • Transfected cells are harvested approximately twenty-four hours after transient transfection. Media was carefully aspirated off and discarded. 10ml of PBS was gently added to each dish of cells followed by careful aspiration. 1ml of Sigma cell dissociation buffer and 3ml of PBS were added to each plate. Cells were pipeted off the plate and the cell suspension is collected into a 50ml conical centrifuge tube. Cells were then centrifuged at room temperature at 1,100 rpm for 5 min. The cell pellet was carefully re-suspended into an appropriate volume of PBS (about 3ml/plate). The cells were then counted using a hemocytometer and additional PBS is added to give the appropriate number of cells (with a final concentration of about 50xl0 4 /well).
  • cAMP standards and Detection Buffer comprising 1 ⁇ Ci of tracer [ 125 I cAMP (50 ⁇ l] to 11 ml Detection Buffer) was prepared and maintained in accordance with the manufacturer's instructions.
  • Stimulation Buffer (preferably prepared fresh) for screening and contained 50ul of Stimulation Buffer, 3ul of test compound (12uM final assay concentration) and 50ul cells, Stimulation Buffer can be stored on ice until utilized.
  • the assay can be initiated by addition of 50ul of cAMP standards to appropriate wells followed by addition of 50ul of PBSA to wells H-ll and H12. 50ul of Stimulation Buffer was added to all wells.
  • DMSO or selected candidate compounds
  • DMSO or selected candidate compounds
  • the cells were then added to the wells and incubated for 60 min at room temperature.
  • lOOul of Detection Buffer containing tracer cAMP was then added to all the wells. Plates were then incubated an additional 2 hours followed by counting in a Wallac MicroBeta scintillation counter. Values of cAMP/well
  • GPR6 and GPR6:Gs ⁇ -Fusion-Protein were analyzed as above and verified to be
  • Fusion Protein is particularly preferred (although one of ordinary skill in the art is credited with selecting an approach that is based upon the particular needs of the artisan). It is further noted that there does not appear to be an "upper-limit” or “ceiling” for the signal such that despite the increase in signal evidenced in Figure 1, these constructs can also be used for screening to determine agonists of GPR6 (i.e., an agonist will further increase the signal).
  • the assay utilizes the ability of G protein-coupled receptors to stimulate [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S binding to membranes expressing the relevant receptors. Therefore, the assay
  • a preferred protocol for the assay is such that the assay was incubated in
  • binding buffer (lOOmM NaCl and lOmM MgCl 2 ), with 0.6 nM
  • Membranes expressing the GPCR6:Gs ⁇ -Fusion Protein (see Example 2) and " for use in the direct identification of candidate compounds as inverse agonists, agonists or partial agonists were prepared as follows:
  • Membrane Scrape Buffer was comprised of 20mM HEPES and lOmM EDTA, pH 7.4;
  • Membrane Wash Buffer was comprised of 20 mM HEPES and 0.1 mM EDTA, pH 7.4;
  • Binding Buffer was comprised of 20mM HEPES, 100 mM NaCl, and 10 mM MgCl 2 , pH 7.4
  • protein concentration of the membranes was determined using the Bradford Protein Assay (protein can be diluted to about 1.5mg/ml, aliquoted and frozen (-80°C) for later use; when frozen, protocol for use is as follows: on the day of the assay, frozen Membrane Protein is thawed at room temperature, followed by vortex and then homogenized with a polytron at about 12 x 1,000 rpm for about 5-10 seconds; it is noted that for multiple preparations, the homogenizer should be thoroughly cleaned between homoginezation of different preparations).
  • Membrane protein concentrations are reassessed and normalized to CMV where the optimal protein concentration is between 0.25ug/ul and 0.30ug/ul.
  • Binding Buffer (as per above); Bradford Dye Reagent; Bradford Protein Standard were utilized, following manufacturer instructions (Biorad, cat. no. 500-0006).
  • Duplicate tubes were prepared, one including the membrane, and one as a control "blank". Each contained 8 OOul Binding Buffer. Thereafter, lOul of Bradford Protein Standard (lmg/ml) was added to each tube, and lOul of membrane Protein was then added to just one tube (not the blanlc). Thereafter, 200ul of Bradford Dye Reagent was added to each tube, followed by vortex of each. After five (5) minutes, the tubes were re- vortexed and the material therein was transfened to cuvettes. The cuvettes were then read using a CECIL 3041 spectrophotometer, at wavelength 595. 3. Direct Identification Assay
  • GDP Buffer consisted of 37.5 ml Binding Buffer and 2mg GDP (Sigma, cat. no. G- 7127), followed by a series of dilutions in Binding Buffer to obtain 0.2 uM GDP (final concentration of GDP in each well was 0.1 uM GDP); each well comprising a candidate compound, had a final volume of 200ul consisting of lOOul GDP Buffer (final concentration, O.luM GDP), 50ul Membrane Protein (12.5ug) in Binding Buffer, and 50ul [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S (0.6 nM) in Binding Buffer (2.5 ul [ 35 S]GTP ⁇ S per 10ml Binding Buffer).
  • Candidate compounds (Tripos, Inc., St. Louis, MO) were received in 96-well plates (these can be frozen at -80°C).
  • Membrane Protein or membranes with expression vector excluding the GPR6:Gs ⁇ -Fusion Protein, as control), were homogenized briefly until in suspension. Protein concentration was then determined using the Bradford Protein Assay set forth above. Membrane Protein (and control) was then diluted to 0.25mg/ml in Binding Buffer (final assay concentration, 12.5ug/well). Thereafter, 100 ul GDP Buffer was added to each well of a Wallac ScmtistripTM (Wallac).
  • a 5ul pin-tool was then used to transfer 5 ul of a candidate compound into such well (i.e., 5ul in total assay volume of 200 ul is a 1:40 ratio such that the final screening concentration of the candidate compound is lOuM).
  • the pin tool was rinsed in three reservoirs comprising water (IX), ethanol (IX) and water (2X) - excess liquid should be shaken from the tool after each rinse and dried with paper towels and kimwipesTM.
  • 50 ul of Membrane Protein was added to each well (a control well comprising membranes without the GPCR Fusion Protein is also utilized), and pre-incubated for 5-10 minutes at room temperature (the plates were covered with foil in that the candidate compounds obtained from
  • the initial or "primary" screen designed to directly identify, e.g., human GPR6
  • candidate compounds were synthesized based upon the structures of the reconfirmed hits (geared towards, e.g., improvement in the characteristics of the compounds) whereby the directed library compounds (Arena Phannaceuticals, Inc., San Diego CA) were then evaluated:
  • the last step in secondary assay evaluation was to determine if test compounds were capable of inhibiting cAMP accumulation (i.e., adenylate cyclase-based assay, disclosed below in Example 4C). This final assay confirms that the directly identified compounds retained inverse agonist properties.
  • FIG. 3 A representative screening assay plate (96 well format) result is presented in Figure 3. Each bar represents the results for a different compound in each well, plus the GPR6:Gs Fusion Protein. The representative results presented i Figure 3 also provide standard deviations based upon the mean results of each plate ("m") and the mean plus two standard deviations ("m+2sd”) and the mean minus two standard deviations ("m-2sd”). Our arbitrary preference for selection of inverse agonists as "leads" from the primary screen involves selection of candidate compounds that reduce the per cent response by at least the mean plate response, minus two standard deviations.
  • the candidate compounds in the following wells were directly identified as putative inverse agonists to the GPR6 receptor: A7; B2; F6; G6 and H6. Further evaluation (using a non-GPR6 receptor) of compounds designated in wells A7, B2, F6 and G6 indicated that these compounds were non-specific to GPR6:Gs-Fusion Protein receptor and thus may instead act to uncouple the G protein from the GPR6 receptor (data not shown). Thus, the candidate compound of well H6, designated "AREl 12" was selected for further evaluation.
  • IC 0 inverse agonist
  • EC 50 agonist
  • the preferred confirmation assay is membrane-based cyclic AMP
  • Transfected stable cells were harvested approximately three days after transfection.
  • Membranes were prepared by homogenization of suspended cells in buffer containing 20mM HEPES, pH 7.4 and lOmM MgCl 2 . Homogenization was performed on ice using a Brinkman
  • cAMP standards and Detection Buffer comprising 2 ⁇ Ci of tracer [ 125 I cAMP (50 ⁇ l] to 11 ml Detection Buffer) were prepared and maintained in accordance with the manufacturer's instructions. Assay Buffer was prepared fresh for screening and contained
  • IBMX isobuty 1-methyl xanthine
  • Candidate compounds identified as per above were added to plate wells (3 ⁇ l/well; 12 ⁇ M final assay concentration), together with 50 ⁇ l Membrane Protein (30 ⁇ g/well) and 50 ⁇ l of Assay Buffer. This admixture was then incubated for 30 minutes at room temperature, with gentle shaking.
  • the dose response range at the maximum is between
  • % control 80 and 120 percent control (% control), and at the mhiimum between 20 and -20 percent control, although such parameters can be a matter of choice for the artisan, depending upon the particular needs of the artisan.
  • IC 50 values were determined using the assays indicated below, by talcing the mean values of the nmnber of assays (placed in brackets), +/- the standard deviation. These, too were assessed using the above protocols, and results are summarized below in Table B: Table B
  • GPR6 inverse agonist exhibits selective GPR6 inverse agonist properties.
  • An in vivo assessment of GPR6 inverse agonist was accomplished by determining the effects of AREl 12 on food intake after food deprivation in rats. Food deprivation was used to induce higher than normal eating behavior (e.g., control/vehicle-treated animals were hyperphagic).
  • mice Male Sprague-Dawley rats were used for the following experiments) were food deprived for 24 hr, and then injected intraperitoneally (IP) with 0, 6.75, 13.5, 27 and 54mg/kg of compound AREl 12. After 30 min, rats were introduced to standard rat chow pellets and observed thereafter for a period of 6.5 hours post-injection.
  • IP intraperitoneally
  • a cannula made of 23 gauge stainless steel tubing (7mm long) was lowered to a point 1mm above the ventricle, using coordinates: A/P -0.6 mm from bregma,
  • AREl 12 The effect of AREl 12 on motor function was also examined. Motor function was assessed by using automated locomotor activity cages. Animals were placed in a standard rodent cage sunounded by photocell, which allowed for automated recording of motor activity. Animals were under no motivational constraints and were free to move around the cage.
  • AREl 12 (IP) prior to placement into in locomotor activity cages. Data are presented in Figure 8. Based upon the data, it can be concluded that AREl 12 does not affect locomotor activity where animals were exposed to locomotor activity cages for 1.5 hour immediately after injection of AREl 12. While the data support the conclusion that AREl 12 decreases locomotor activity in rats 16 hours post-injection (see, Figure 8), thus indicating that AREl 12 has some sedative activity, (e.g., the animals appear relaxed and demonstrate little to no anxiety-like behavior), this sedative activity is mild and cannot, in and of itself, account for the decrease in food intake.
  • AREl 12 was orally administered in non-food deprived rats 4.5 hours prior to testing. Animals were subjected to a pre-pulse of 12db followed by a 120db pulse and subsequently measured for the height in which the animals jumped.
  • Figure 12 shows the average startle amplitude of administered rats (i.e., at 6.75, 13.5 and 54mg/kg). Treated rats at 13.5 and 54mg/kg did not jump as high, as compared to the vehicle and rats treated at the low dose of 6.75mg/kg, in response to the pulse. This data further suggests that at a higher dosage of AREl 12, animals demonstrate a mild sedative activity.
  • ARE140 evidenced a slow intake of food (e.g., about 1 to 1.5 grams every two hours) over an eight hour period post-administration; while the vehicle rat consumed about 2 to 2.5 grams food every two hours. Similar to the vehicle rat, analog ARE135, an opened ring structure, evidenced that over an eight hour period post-administration the rats increasingly consumed about 2.5 grams every two hours. (See, Figure 10A). Furthermore, the body weight of the vehicle rat and administered rats with analog ARE135 gained about 19.5 grams. On the other hand, the closed ring structures evidenced a decrease in body weight gain as follows:
  • the treated rats particularly AREl 30 and ARE 136, drank less amount of water compared to the vehicle animal, i.e., about 10 grams and 4 grams less, respectively; while analogs ARE135 and ARE140 drank a comparable amount (i.e., about 19 grams). See, Figure 10B.
  • the closed ring structures preferably AREl 12, ARE130, ARE136 and ARE140; more preferably AREl 12 and ARE130; and most preferably AREl 12, are specific to the G protein-coupled receptor six.
  • Table E lists several IC 50 values for the analogs of AREl 12. IC 50 values were derived using the GTP Assay as disclosed in Example 4A. At low concentrations of analogs ARE 130, ARE 136 and ARE 140 GPR6 is activated, thus stimulating the conversion of GTP to GDP. This data supports the suggestion that closed ring structures are selective inverse agonists for GPR6. Table E
  • the objective in the screening is to find small molecules that increase the measured signal.
  • GPR6 inverse agonists As a first series of GPR6 inverse agonists, disclosed are "open chain aryls" represented structurally as follows (note: if the selection of one or more of R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 results in an asymmetric or diastereomeric molecule, then the racemic mixtures, the diastereomeric mixtures and each of the separated (+) and (-) enantiomers or diastereomers
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R 5 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl,
  • R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl andr alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR 13 R 14 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • R 11 are all H, then at least one of R 1 , R R 5 and IT is other than H; and when R ⁇ R , R , R 3 , R 6 , R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are all H, then R 3 is not Cl, CH 3 , or OCH 3 ; and when R 1 , R 5 , R 6 , R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are all H, then R 2 , R 3 , and R 4 are not OCH 3 .
  • aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to four hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a six membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • alkylaryl in intended to mean alkyl moieties having an aryl moiety attached thereto, for example benzyl groups.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tetrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R 5 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl andr alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR ⁇ 3 R ⁇ 4 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH ) m CO H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
  • R 13 and/or R 14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered cyclic structure which may be either saturated or unsaturated and that may contain up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • a second series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "closed chain aryls" represented structurally as follows:
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R 5 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C ⁇ _ 8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH ) n NR ⁇ 3 R ⁇ 4 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • SC ⁇ Hn, SC 6 H 13 involve SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 , SCOC 3 H 7 , SCOC 4 H 9 , SO 3 CH 3 ,
  • R 13 and R 14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • SC 4 H 9 , SC 5 H), SC 5 H ⁇ , SC 6 H ll5 SC 6 H 13 ache SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 ,
  • R 15 is selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl;
  • R 6 , R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are all H, then at least one of R 1 , R 2 , R 3 and R 4 is other than H; and when R 1 , R 2 , R 4 , R 5 , R 6 , R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are all H, then R 3 is not Cl, CH 3 , or OCH 3 ; and when R 1 , R 5 , R 6 ,
  • R 7 , R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are all H, then R 2 , R 3 , and R 4 are not OCH 3 .
  • aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle.
  • C ⁇ -8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pyrrolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tetrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following: H, F, Cl, Br, I, R 12 , CF 3 , CF 2 R 12 , CF 2 CF 2 , CC1 3 , CC1 2 R 12 , CC1 2 CC1 2 R 12 , NR 13 R 14 ,
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR 13 R 14 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • SC 6 H ⁇ , SC 6 H 13 involve SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 , SCOC 3 H 7 , SCOC 4 H 9 , SO 3 CH 3 ,
  • R 13 and R 14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • SC H 9 , SC 5 H 9 , SCsH ⁇ , SC 6 H ⁇ , SC 6 H 13 ache SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 ,
  • R 1S is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, andC 2-8 alkenyl;
  • Open chain 6 membered heteroaryl series A third series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "open chain 6 membered heteroaryls" represented structurally as follows:
  • V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR 1 , CR 2 , CR 3 , CR 4 , and CR 5 , with the provisio that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R 5 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R 5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 , CHCHCH 2 , CH 2 CH 2 CH 2 , CH 2 CH 2>
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl,
  • R 12 is selected from H, C ⁇ - 8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3- s cycloalkyl, C 4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR 13 R 14 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 13 and R 14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2- 8 alkenyl;
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • Suitable -s alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl. Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing open chain 6 membered heteroaryl series.
  • a fourth series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "closed chain 6 membered heteroaryls" represented structurally as follows:
  • V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR 1 , CR 2 , CR 3 , CR 4 , and CR 5 , with the provisio that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
  • R 1 , R 2 , R 3 , R 4 , and R s are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR 13 R 1 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) CO 2 H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 13 and R 14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF 3 , CC1 3 , CH 3 , C 2 H 5 , C 3 H 7 , C 4 H 9 , NH 2 , NHCH 3 , N(CH 3 ) 2 , NHC 2 H 5 , N(C 2 H 5 ) 2 , NHC 3 H 7 , N(C 3 H 7 ) 2 , NHC 4 H 9 , N(C 4 H 9 ) 2 , NHCOH, NHCOCH 3 , NHCOC2H5, NHCOC 3 H 7 , NHCOC 4 H 9 , NHSO 2 CH 3 , NHSO 2 C 2 H 5 ,
  • R 15 is selected from H, -g straight chain alkyl , branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl;
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • C 1-8 allcyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl;
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pyrrolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • a fifth series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "open chain 5 membered heteraryls" represented structurally as follows:
  • Z is selected from NR 4 , O and S;
  • W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR , CR , and CR , with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR 1 and X is CR 2 ;
  • R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 4 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR 5 , CSR 5 , and SO 2 R 5 ;
  • R 5 , R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3 - 8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2- s alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR 13 R 14 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, .s straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl and CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 13 and R 14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • C 1-8 alkyl groups examples include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • Closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl (sub-series a) As a sixth series of GPR6 inverse agonists, disclosed are "closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl sub-series a" represented structurally as follows: wherein Z is selected from NR 4 , O and S;
  • W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR 1 , CR 2 , and CR 3 , with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR 1 and X is CR 2 ;
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R 3 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 4 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR 5 , CSR 5 , and SO 2 R 5 ;
  • R s , R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3 - 8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NRi 3 R 14 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H wherein n is 2 through 6 or m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 13 and R 14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C ⁇ _ 8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • C 1-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • heteroaryl sub-series b represented structurally as follows:
  • Y is selected from NR 4 , O or S;
  • W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR 1 , CR 2 , or CR 3 ' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR 1 and X is CR 2 ;
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R 3 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 4 is H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR 5 , CSR 5 , and SO 2 R 5 ;
  • R 5 , R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3 .. 8 cycloalkyl, C 4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aiyl, alkylaryl, (CH ⁇ n R ⁇ Ru, (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2 -8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • R 15 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • C ⁇ -8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
  • W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR 1 , CR 2 , or CR 3 ' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR 1 and X is CR 2 ;
  • R 1 , R 2 , and R 3 are each independently selected from the following:
  • R 4 is selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR 5 , CSR 5 , and SO 2 R 5 ;
  • R 5 , R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 6 and R 7 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
  • R 8 , R 9 , R 10 , and R 11 are each independently selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
  • R 12 is selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloallcyl, C 4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH 2 ) n NR ⁇ 3 R 1 , (CH 2 ) m SO 3 H, and (CH 2 ) m CO 2 H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
  • R 13 and R 14 are each independently selected from H, C 1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C 2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH 2 aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH 2 aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
  • SC 6 H ⁇ , SC 6 H 13 involve SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 , SCOC 3 H 7 , SCOC 4 H 9 , SO 3 CH 3 ,
  • R 13 and R 14 fonn part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
  • SC 4 H 9 , SC 5 H 9 , SC 5 H ⁇ , SC 6 H l l5 SC 6 H 13 ache SCF 3 , SCOCH 3 , SCOC 2 H 5 ,
  • R 15 is selected from H, C ⁇ -8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C 3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C 2-8 alkenyl.
  • An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
  • suitable C 1-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
  • Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl.
  • Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl,
  • Protocol A is the synthetic approach up to formula (III)
  • “Protocol B” is the synthetic approach up to formula (V). It is noted that in each of these approaches, the compound produced by Protocol A is then in turn used as the starting material for the compound produced by Protocol B.
  • Compounds of formulas (III) and (V) or a solvate or physiologically functional derivative thereof can be used as active ingredients in pharmaceutical compositions, specifically as a GPR6 inverse agonists.
  • the data developed herein supports the conclusion that GPR6 inverse agonists are of use for the treatment or prophylaxis of clinical obesity or overweight disorders in mammals, including, but not limited to, human.
  • Compounds of the formulas (HI) and (V) may be administered by oral, sublingual, parenteral, rectal, topical administration or by a transdermal patch.
  • Transdermal patches dispense a drug at a controlled rate by presenting the drug for absorption in an efficient manner with a minimum of degradation of the drug.
  • transdermal patches comprise an impermeable backing layer, a single pressure sensitive adhesive and a removable protective layer with a release liner.
  • a desired efficacious transdermal patch based upon the needs of the artisan.
  • physiologically acceptable salts of the compounds may also be formed and used as therapeutic agents.
  • physiologically acceptable salts of the compounds may also be formed and used as therapeutic agents.
  • Different amounts of the compounds of formulas (III) and (V) will be required to achieve the desired biological effect. The amount will depend on factors such as the specific compound, the use for which it is intended, the means of administration, and the condition of the treated individual - all of these dosmg parameters are within the level of one of ordinary skill in the medicinal arts.
  • a typical dose may be expected to fall in the range of 0.001 to 200 mg per kilogram of body weight of the mammal.
  • Unit doses may contain from 1 to 200 mg of the compounds of formula (III) or (V) and may be administered one or more times a day, individually or in multiples.
  • the dose is based on the cation (for salts) or the unsolvated compound.
  • compositions including, but not limited to, pharmaceutical compositions, comprising at least one compound of formulas (III) and (V) and/or an acceptable salt or solvate thereof (e.g., a pharmaceutically acceptable salt or solvate) as an active ingredient combined with at least one carrier or excipient (e.g., pharmaceutical carrier or excipient).
  • Pharmaceutical compositions may be used in the treatment of clinical conditions for which a GPR6 inverse agonist is indicated.
  • At least one compound of fonnula (III) and (V) may be combined with the carrier in either solid or liquid form in a unit dose formulation.
  • the pharmaceutical carrier must be compatible with the other ingredients in the composition and must be tolerated by the individual recipient.
  • compositions of the invention may be incorporated into the pharmaceutical composition of the invention if desired, and if such ingredients are compatible with the other ingredients in the composition.
  • Formulations may be prepared by any suitable method, typically by uniformly mixing the active compound(s) with liquids or finely divided solid carriers, or both, in the required proportions, and then, if necessary, forming the resulting mixture into a desired shape.
  • Liquid preparations for oral aciministration may be in the form of solutions, emulsions, aqueous or oily suspensions, and syrups.
  • the oral preparations may be in the form of dry powder that can be reconstituted with water or another suitable liquid vehicle before use. Additional additives such as suspending or emulsifying agents, non-aqueous vehicles (including edible oils), preservatives, and flavorings and colorants may be added to the liquid preparations.
  • Parenteral dosage forms may be prepared by dissolving the compound of the invention in a suitable liquid vehicle and filter sterilizing the solution before filling and sealing an appropriate vial or ampoule. These are just a few examples of the many appropriate methods well known in the art for preparing dosage forms. It is noted that when the GPR6 inverse agonists are utilized as active ingredients in a pharmaceutical composition, these are not intended for use only in humans, but in other non- human mammals as well.
  • GPR6 inverse agonists for the treatment of obesity in domestic animals (e.g., cats and dogs), and GPR6 agonists in other domestic animals where no disease or disorder is evident (e.g., food-oriented animals such as cows, chickens, fish, etc.).
  • food-oriented animals such as cows, chickens, fish, etc.
  • Mass spectra were recorded on a PE Sciex API 150 EX mass spectrometer linked to a
  • Protocol A Protocol A:
  • Protocol A The procedure of Protocol A above was followed, using benzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride, to yield AREl 13 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B The procedure of Protocol B above was followed, using AREl 13 instead of AREl 11, to yield AREl 14 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 4-(trifluoromethyl)benzoyl chloride instead of thiophen-2-carbonyl chloride to yield AREl 15 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 15 instead of AREl 11 to yield AREl 16 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 4-tert-butylbenzoyl chloride instead of thio ⁇ hene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 17 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 17 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 18 as a white solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 19 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 120 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 4-methoxybenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE121 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE 121 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 122 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 3-methoxybenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE123 instead of AREl 11 to yield ARE124 as a
  • Protocol A was followed using 3-methylbenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE125 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE 125 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE126 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 4-ffuorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE 127 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE127 instead of AREl 11 to compound ARE128 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 3-fluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE 129 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE 129 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
  • Protocol A was followed using 2-fluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE131 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 132 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 2,4-difluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE133 as a yellow solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE133 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
  • ARE135 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoIidine-l-carbothioyl)-naphthyl-2-carboxamide and ARE136 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c1-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yhdene)-naphthyl- carboxamide
  • Protocol A was followed using 2-naphthoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 35 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 35 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 36 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 1-naphthoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 37 as a yellow solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using benzo[b]thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride, to yield compound AREl 39 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 39 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE140 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 2-furoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE143 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE 143 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
  • Protocol A was followed using 2,5-dimethylisoxazole-4-carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound N-(2-tm ⁇ xo-in ⁇ dazolidine-l-carbothioyl)- 2,5-dimetliylisoxazole-4-carboxamide as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was then followed using the above compound instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 148 as a white solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using isoxazole-3 -carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE149 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol A was followed using 2-(4-cl ⁇ lorophenyl)-3-(rrifluoromethyl)pyrazole-4-
  • Protocol B was followed using AREl 51 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
  • Protocol A was followed using pyridine2-methylthio-3-carbonyl chloride instead of
  • Protocol A was followed using pyridine-3 -carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE155 as a yellowish solid.
  • Protocol B was followed using ARE 155 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 56 as a white solid.

Landscapes

  • Chemical & Material Sciences (AREA)
  • Organic Chemistry (AREA)
  • Health & Medical Sciences (AREA)
  • Veterinary Medicine (AREA)
  • Medicinal Chemistry (AREA)
  • Public Health (AREA)
  • General Health & Medical Sciences (AREA)
  • Animal Behavior & Ethology (AREA)
  • Life Sciences & Earth Sciences (AREA)
  • Pharmacology & Pharmacy (AREA)
  • General Chemical & Material Sciences (AREA)
  • Bioinformatics & Cheminformatics (AREA)
  • Engineering & Computer Science (AREA)
  • Nuclear Medicine, Radiotherapy & Molecular Imaging (AREA)
  • Chemical Kinetics & Catalysis (AREA)
  • Hematology (AREA)
  • Obesity (AREA)
  • Diabetes (AREA)
  • Child & Adolescent Psychology (AREA)
  • Epidemiology (AREA)
  • Pharmaceuticals Containing Other Organic And Inorganic Compounds (AREA)
  • Medicines That Contain Protein Lipid Enzymes And Other Medicines (AREA)
  • Plural Heterocyclic Compounds (AREA)
  • Nitrogen And Oxygen Or Sulfur-Condensed Heterocyclic Ring Systems (AREA)
  • Peptides Or Proteins (AREA)

Abstract

Disclosed herein are small molecule modulators of the G protein-coupled receptor six, represented structurally as follows: formula(I) or formula (II), methods of making such compounds, and methods of using such compounds.

Description

SMALL MOLECULE MODULATORS OF G PROTEIN-COUPLED
RECEPTOR SIX
RELATED CASES
This patent document is related to U.S. Patent Application 09/364,425 filed via Express Mail on July 30, 1999 claύriing the benefit of commonly owned: (1) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/094,879, filed July 31, 1998; (2) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/106,300, filed October 30, 1998; (3) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/110,906, filed December 4, 1998; (4) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/121,851, filed February 26, 1999 (5) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/173,850, filed December 30, 1999; and (6) Provisional Patent Application Serial Number 60/174,428, filed January 4, 2000. The disclosure of each of the foregoing patent documents is incorporated in its entirety herein by reference. Priority benefit of aforementioned U.S. Application Ser. No. 09/364,425 and Provisional Patent Applications (4), (5) and (6) above is hereby claimed.
FIELD OF INVENTION
The present invention relates to small molecule modulators of G protein-coupled receptor six (GPR6); preferably, the small molecule modulators are preferentially selected for the human GPR6; most preferably, the small molecule modulators are inverse agonists to the human GPR6. BACKGROUND OF THE INVENTION. A. G Protein-Coupled Receptors
G protein-coupled receptors (GPCR) share a common structural motif. All these receptors have seven sequences of between 22 to 24 hydrophobic amino acids that form seven alpha helices, each of which spans the membrane. The transmembrane helices are joined by strands of amino acids having a larger loop between the fourth and fifth transmembrane helix on the extracellular side of the membrane. Another larger loop, composed primarily of hydrophilic amino acids, joins transmembrane helices five and six on the intracellular side of the membrane. The carboxy teπninus of the receptor lies intracellularly with the amino terminus in the extracellular space. It is thought that the loop joining helices five and six, as well as the carboxy terminus, interact with the G protein. Currently, Gq, Gs, Gi, and Go are G proteins that have been identified.
Under physiological conditions, GPCRs exist in the cell membrane in equilibrium between two different states or conformations: an "inactive" state and an "active" state. A receptor in an inactive state is unable to link to the intracellular transduction pathway to produce a biological response. Changing the receptor conformation to the active state allows linkage to the transduction pathway and produces a biological response.
A receptor may be stabilized in an active state by an endogenous ligand or an exogenous agonist ligand. Recent discoveries, including but not exclusively limited to, modifications to the amino acid sequence of the receptor, provide alternative mechanisms other than ligands to stabilize the active state conformation. These approaches effectively stabilize the receptor in an active state by simulating the effect of a ligand binding to the receptor. Stabilization by such ligand-independent approaches is termed "constitutive receptor activation." A receptor for which the endogenous ligand is unknown or not identified is referred to as an "orphan receptor."
B. Traditional Compound Screening
Generally, the use of an orphan receptor for screening purposes to identify compounds that modulate a biological response associated with such receptor has not been possible. This is because the traditional "dogma" regarding screening of compounds mandates that the ligand for the receptor be known, whereby compounds that competitively bind with the receptor, i.e., by interfering or blocking the binding of the natural ligand with the receptor, are selected. By definition, then, this approach has no applicability with respect to orphan receptors. Thus, by adhering to this dogmatic approach to the discovery of therapeutics, the art, in essence, has taught and has been taught to forsake the use of orphan receptors unless and until the natural ligand for the receptor is discovered. The pursuit of an endogenous ligand for an orphan receptor can take several years and cost millions of dollars.
Furthermore, and given that there are an estimated 2,000 GPCRs in the human genome, the majority of which being orphan receptors, the traditional dogma castigates a creative approach to the discovery of therapeutics to these receptors.
Numerous orphan G protein-coupled receptors are constitutively active in their endogenous state. GPR6 is a 362 amino acid homolog of GPR3; the endogenous ligand for GPR6 is unknown (Song, Z.-H. et al, supra.; see Figure 1 for reported amino acid sequence). GPR6 transcripts are reported to be abundant in the human putamen and to a lesser extent in the frontal cortex, hippocampus, and hypothalamus (Heiber, M. et al. DNA and Cell Biology (1995) 14(1): 25; see Figure 1 for reported nucleic acid and amino acid sequences for GPR6). C. Obesity Recently, our current knowledge of human obesity has advanced dramatically.
Previously, obesity was viewed as an oppugnant behavior of inappropriate eating in the setting of appealing foods. Studies of animal models of obesity, biochemical alterations in both humans and animals, and the complex interactions of psychosocial and cultural factors that create receptiveness to human obesity indicate that this disease in humans is multifaceted and deeply entrenched in biologic systems. Thus, it is almost certain that obesity has multiple causes and that there are different types of obesity.
An increasing number of children and adolescents are overweight. Although not all overweight children will necessarily become overweight adults, the growing occurrence of obesity in childhood is likely to be reflected in increasing obesity in adult years. The high prevalence of obesity in our adult population and the likelihood that the nation of the future will be even more obese demands a re-examination of the health implications of this disease. See, Health Implications of Obesity. NTH Consens. Statement Online 1985 Feb 11-13; 5(9):1- 7.
"Clinical obesity" is a measurement of the excess body fat relative to lean body mass and is defined as a body weight more than 20% above the ideal body weight. Recent estimates suggest that 1 in 2 adults in the United States is clinically obese, an increase of more than 25% over the past decades. Flegal MD., et al., 22 Int. J Obes. Relat. Metab. -Disor. 39 (1998). Both overweight conditions and clinical obesity are a major health concerns worldwide, in particular because clinical obesity is often accompanied by numerous complications, i.e., hypertension and Type II diabetes, which in turn can cause coronary artery disease, stroke, late-stage complications of diabetes and premature death. (See, e.g., NishinaP.M. et al., 43 Metab. 554 (1994)). Although the etiologic mechanisms underlying obesity require further clarification,
the net effect of such mechanisms leads to an imbalance between energy intake and expenditure. Both genetic and environmental factors are likely to be involved in the pathogenesis of obesity. These include excess caloric intake, decreased physical activity, and metabolic and endocrine abnormalities.
Treatment of overweight conditions and clinical obesity via pharmaceutical agents are not only of importance with respect to the conditions themselves, but also with respect to the
possibility of preventing other diseases that are associated with, e.g., clinical obesity, as well as enhancement of the positive feeling of "self that often accompanies those who are
overweight or clinically obese and who encounter a significant reduction in body weight.
Given the foregoing discussion, it is apparent that compounds which help in the
treatment of such disorders would be useful and would provide an advance in both research and clinical medicine. The present invention is directed to these, as well as other, important
ends.
SUMMARY OF THE INVENTION
The present invention relates to small molecule modulators of the GPR6 receptor. Most
preferably, the GPR6 modulators have inverse agonist characteristics at the receptor.
BRIEF DESCRIPTION OF THE DRAWINGS
Figure 1 is a graphic representation of the results of a cell-based cyclic AMP assay providing comparative results for constitutive signaling GPR6 and GPR6:Fusion Protein. Figure 2 is a graphic representation of the results of a [35S]GTPγS assay providing comparative results for constitutive signaling by GPR6 and GPR6 -.Fusion Protein.
Figure 3 is a graphic representation of results from a primary screen of several candidate compounds against GPR6; results for compound "AREl 12" are provided in well H6.
Figure 4 is a graphic representation of an IC50 curve for compound AREl 12 against the GPR6 receptor, indicating an ICso value of 0.1501 μM
Figures 5A, 5B and 5C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (IP) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (5 A), water intake (5B) and body weight gain (5C) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
Figures 6A, 6B and 6C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (IP) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (6A), water intake (6B) and body weight gain (6C) on non food deprived rats.
Figure 7A, 7B and 7C provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo admhiistration (ICV) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (7 A), water intake (7B) and body weight gain (7C) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
Figure 8 provides a graphic representation of the results of AREl 12 on locomotor activity on rats 16 hours post-administration.
Figures 9A and 9B provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (oral-gavage) of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake on 24-hour food deprived rats (9 A) and on cumulative food intake on non food deprived rats (9B). Figures 10A, 10B and IOC provide graphic representations of the results of in vivo administration (oral-gavage) of structural analogs of AREl 12 on cumulative food intake (10A), water intake (10B) and body weight gain (IOC) on 24-hour food deprived rats.
Figure 11 provide a graphic representation of the results of a daily repeated in vivo (IP) administration of AREl 12 rats showing a long-term decrease in body weight in non food deprived.
Figure 12 provide a graphic representation of the results of in vivo (oral-gavage) administration of AREl 12 showing a decrease in startle reflex in non food deprived rats.
DEFINITIONS
The scientific literature that has evolved around receptors has adopted a number of
terms. For clarity and consistency, the following definitions will be used throughout this patent document. To the extent that these definitions conflict with other definitions for these terms, the
following definitions shall control.
ACTIVE INGREDIENT in the context of a "Pharmaceutical Composition" shall mean a component of a Pharmaceutical Composition that provides the primary pharmaceutical benefit,
as opposed to an "inactive ingredient" which would generally be recognized as providing no
pharmaceutical benefit.
AGONISTS shall mean moieties that activate the intracellular response when they
bind to the receptor, or enhance GTP binding to membranes. In the context of the disclosed invention, a Pharmaceutical Candidate comprising a GPR6 Agonist can be utilized for
increasing body weight and/or affecting metabolism such that the recipient gains weight and/or maintains weight. Such can be used in the context of disorders and/or diseases where weight loss is a component of the disease and/or disorder such as, for example, anorexia nervosa, cancer, AIDS cachexia, etc.
PARTIAL AGONISTS shall mean moieties that activate the intracellular response when they bind to the receptor to a lesser degree/extent than do agonists, or enhance GTP binding to membranes to a lesser degree/extent than do agonists.
ANTAGONIST shall mean moieties that competitively bind to the receptor at the same site as the agonists but which do not activate the intracellular response initiated by the active form of the receptor, and can thereby inhibit the intracellular responses by agonists or partial agonists. ANTAGONISTS do not diminish the baseline intracellular response in the absence of an agonist or partial agonist.
CANDIDATE COMPOUND, in the context of the disclosed invention, shall mean a small molecule that is amenable to a screening technique.
COMPOSITION shall mean a material comprising at least two compounds or two components; for example, and not limitation, a Pharmaceutical Composition comprising at least one Active Ingredient and at least one other component is a Composition.
COMPOUND EFFICACY shall mean a measurement of the ability of a compound to inhibit or stimulate receptor functionahty, as opposed to receptor binding affinity.
CONSTITUTIVE RECEPTOR ACTIVATION shall mean stabilization of a receptor in the active state by means other than binding of the receptor with its endogenous ligand or a chemical equivalent thereof.
CONTACT or CONTACTING shall mean bringing at least two moieties together, whether in an in vitro system or an in vivo system. ENDOGENOUS shall mean a material that a mammal naturally produces.
ENDOGENOUS in reference to, for example and not limitation, the term "receptor" shall mean that which is naturally produced by a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human) or a virus. In contrast, the term NON-ENDOGENOUS in this context shall mean that which is not naturally produced by a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human) or a virus. For example, and not limitation, a receptor which is not constitutively active in its endogenous form, but when manipulated becomes constitutively active, is most preferably referred to herein as a "non-endogenous, constitutively activated receptor." Both terms can be utilized to describe both "in vivo" and "in vitro" systems. For example, and not a limitation, in a screening approach, the endogenous or non-endogenous receptor may be in reference to an in vitro screemng system. As a further example and not limitation, where the genome of a mammal has been manipulated to include a non-endogenous constitutively activated receptor, screening of a candidate compound by means of an in vivo system is viable.
G PROTEIN COUPLED RECEPTOR FUSION PROTEIN and GPCR FUSION
PROTEIN, in the context of the invention disclosed herein, each mean a non-endogenous protein comprising an endogenous, constitutively activated orphan GPCR fused to at least one G protein, most preferably, the alpha (α) subunit of such G protein (this being the subunit that binds GTP), with the G protein preferably being of the same type as the G protein that naturally couples with endogenous orphan GPCR. For example, and not limitation, in an endogenous state, the G protein "Gsα" is the predominate G protein that couples with GPR6 such that a GPCR Fusion Protein based upon GPR6 would be a non-endogenous protein comprising GPR6 fused to Gsα. The G protein can be fused directly to the c-terminus of the endogenous, constitutively active orphan GPCR or there may be spacers between the two.
INHIBIT or INHIBITING, in relationship to the term "response" shall mean that a response is decreased or prevented in the presence of a compound as opposed to in the absence of the compound.
INVERSE AGONISTS shall mean moieties that bind the endogenous form of the receptor, and which inhibit the baseline intracellular response initiated by the active endogenous form of the receptor below the normal base level of activity that is observed in the absence of the endogenous ligand, agonists or partial agonists, or decrease GTP binding to membranes. Preferably, the baseline intracellular response is decreased in the presence of the inverse agonist by at least 30%, more preferably by at least 50%, and most preferably by at least 75%, as compared with the baseline response in the absence of the inverse agonist. Biologically, "GPR6 inverse agonist" shall mean moieties that can be assessed in vivo by factors other than just determination that the moiety has interacted with GPR6, e.g., when the moiety interacts with a mammal's GPR6 in vivo, there is an observed decrease in the mammal's body weight by at least about 5% within 24 to 48 hours of contacting GPR6 and the GPR6 inverse agonist.
LIGAND shall mean an endogenous, naturally occurring molecule specific for an endogenous, naturally occurring receptor.
PHARMACEUTICAL COMPOSITION shall mean a composition comprising at one Active Ingredient and at least one ingredient that is not an Active Ingredient (for example and not limitation, a filler, dye, or a mechanism for slow release), whereby the composition is amenable to investigation for a specified, efficacious outcome in a mammal (for example, and not limitation, a human). Those of ordinary skill in the art will understand and appreciate the techniques appropriate for determining whether an active ingredient has a desired efficacious outcome based upon the needs of the artisan.
SMALL MOLECULE, in the context of the invention disclosed herein, is a non- protein based moiety; for example, and not limitation, AREl 12 is a small molecule within the context of this invention, while the endogenous ligand for a receptor is not a small molecule.
DETAILED DESCRIPTION A. Introduction
The traditional study of receptors has always proceeded from the a priori assumption (historically based) that the endogenous ligand must first be identified before discovery could proceed to find antagonists and other molecules that could affect the receptor. Even in cases where an antagonist might have been known first, the search immediately extended to looking for the endogenous ligand. This mode of thinking has persisted in receptor research even after the discovery of constitutively activated receptors. What has not been recognized is that it is the active state of the receptor that is most useful for discovering agonists, partial agonists, and inverse agonists of the receptor. For those diseases that result from an overly active receptor, what is desired in a therapeutic drug is a compound which acts to diminish the active state of a receptor, not necessarily a drug which is an antagonist to the endogenous ligand. This is because a compound (e.g., therapeutic) that reduces the activity of the active receptor state need not bind at the same site as the endogenous ligand. Thus, as taught by a method of this invention, any search for therapeutic compounds should start by screening compounds against the ligand-independent active state. The search, then, is for an inverse agonist to the active state receptor. Screening candidate compounds against orphan receptors, for example, including and not limited to, GPR6 and GPR6 Fusion Protein, allows for the direct identification of candidate compounds which act at this orphan cell surface receptor, without requiring any prior knowledge or use of the receptor's endogenous ligand. By determining areas within the body where such receptors are expressed and/or over-expressed, it is possible to determine related disease/disorder states which are associated with the expression and/or over- expression of these receptors; such an approach is disclosed in this patent document.
B. Disease/Disorder Identification and/or Selection
As will be set forth in greater detail below, most preferably inverse agonists and agonists to GPR6 can be identified by the methodologies of this invention. Such inverse agonists and agonists are ideal candidates as lead compounds in drug discovery programs for treating diseases related to this receptor. Indeed, an antagonist to such a receptor (even if the ligand were known) may be ineffective given that the receptor is activated even in the absence of ligand-receptor binding. Because of the ability to directly identify inverse agonists and agonists to these receptors, thereby allowing for the development of pharmaceutical compositions, a search for diseases and disorders associated with these receptors is possible. For example, GPR6 is expressed in the following areas of the brain: lateral hypothalamus, hippocampus, nucleus accumbens, caudate and cerebral cortex. Given the high levels of expression in the areas of the brain associated with feeding behavior and metabolism, GPR6 is likely to be related to a variety of disorders and diseases related to abnormal food intake and/or metabolism, e.g., clinical obesity.
C. Screening of Candidate Compounds
1. Generic GPCR screening assay techniques When a G protein receptor becomes constitutively active, it binds to a G protein (for example Gq, Gs, Gi, Go) and stimulates the binding of GTP to the G protein. The G protein then acts as a GTPase and slowly hydrolyzes the GTP to GDP, whereby the receptor, under normal conditions, becomes deactivated. However, constitutively activated receptors continue to exchange GDP to GTP. A non-hydrolyzable analog of GTP, [35S]GTPγS, can be used to monitor enhanced binding to membranes which express constitutively activated receptors. It is reported that [35S]GTPγS can be used to monitor G protein coupling to membranes in the absence and presence of ligand. An example of this monitoring, among other examples well-known and available to those in the art, was reported by Traynor and
Nahorski in 1995. Generally, this preferred use of this assay system is for initial screening of candidate compounds because the system is genetically applicable to all G protein-coupled receptors regardless of the particular G protein that interacts with the intracellular domain of the receptor.
2. Specific GPCR screening assay techniques
Once candidate compounds are identified using the "generic" G protein-coupled receptor assay (i.e. an assay to select compounds that are agonists, partial agonists, or inverse agonists), further screemng to confirm that the compounds have interacted at the receptor site is preferred. For example, a compound identified by the "generic" assay may not bind to the receptor, but may instead merely "uncouple" the G protein from the intracellular domain. Thus, by screening those candidate compounds, which have been identified using a "generic" assay in an agonist and/or antagonist competitive binding assay, further refinement in the selection process is provided. In the case of GPR6 it has been determined that this receptor couples the G protein Gs.
Gs stimulates the enzyme adenylyl cyclase (Gi, on the other hand, inhibits this enzyme).
Adenylyl cyclase catalyzes the conversion of ATP to cAMP; thus, assays that detect cAMP can be utilized, for example and not limitation, cell-based cAMP assay, to determine if a candidate compound is an inverse agonist to the receptor (i.e., such a compound which contacts the receptor would decrease the levels of cAMP relative to the uncontacted receptor). As a result,
"cyclase-based assays" can be used to further screen those compounds selected from an agonist and/or antagonist competitive binding assay.
3. GPCR Fusion Protein
The use of an endogenous, constitutively activated orphan GPCRs, such as GPR6, for use in screening of candidate compounds for the direct identification of inverse agonists, agonists and partial agonists, provides a unique challenge in that, by definition, the endogenous receptor is active even in the absence of an endogenous ligand bound thereto. Thus, in order to differentiate between, e.g., the endogenous receptor in the presence of a candidate compound and the endogenous receptor in the absence of that compound, with an aim of such a differentiation to allow for an understanding as to whether such compound may be an inverse agonist, agonist, partial agonist or have no affect on such a receptor, it is preferred that an approach be utilized that can enhance such differentiation. A preferred approach is the use of a GPCR Fusion Protein.
Generally, once it is determined that an endogenous orphan GPCR is constitutively activate, using the assay techniques set forth above (as well as others), it is possible to determine the predominant G protein that couples with the endogenous GPCR. Coupling of the G protein to the GPCR provides a signaling pathway that can be assessed. Because it is most preferred that screening take place by use of a mammalian expression system, such a system will be expected to have endogenous G protein therein. Thus, by definition, in such a system, the endogenous, constitutively active orphan GPCR will continuously signal. In this regard, it is preferred that this signal be enhanced such that in the presence of, e.g., an inverse agonist to the receptor, it is more likely that one will be able to more readily differentiate, particularly in the context of screening, between the receptor when it is contacted with the inverse agonist.
The GPCR Fusion Protein is intended to enhance the efficacy of G protein coupling with the endogenous GPCR. The GPCR Fusion Protein appears to be important for screening with an endogenous, constitutively activated GPCR because such an approach increases the signal that is most preferably utilized in such screening techniques. This is important in facilitating a significant "signal to noise" ratio. A significant ratio is preferred for the screening of candidate compounds as disclosed herein.
The construction of a construct useful for expression of a GPCR Fusion Protein is within the purview of those having ordinary skill in the art. Commercially available expression vectors and systems offer a variety of approaches that can fit the particular needs of an investigator. The criteria of importance for such a GPCR Fusion Protein construct is that the endogenous GPCR sequence and the G protein sequence both be in-frame (preferably, the sequence for the endogenous GPCR is upstream of the G protein sequence) and that the "stop" codon of the GPCR must be deleted or replaced such that upon expression of the GPCR, the G protein can also be expressed. The GPCR can be linked directly to the G protein, or there can be spacer residues between the two (preferably, no more than about 12, although this number can be readily ascertained by one of ordinary skill in the art). Both approaches have been evaluated, and in terms of measurement of the activity of the GPCR, the results are substantially the same; however, there is a preference (based upon convenience) for use of a spacer in that some restriction sites that are not used will, upon expression, effectively, become a spacer. Most preferably, the G protein that couples to the endogenous GPCR will have been identified prior to the creation of the GPCR Fusion Protein construct. Because there are only a few G proteins that have been identified, it is preferred that a construct comprising the sequence of the G protein (i.e., a universal G protein construct) be available for insertion of an endogenous GPCR sequence therein; this provides for efficiency in the context of large-scale screening of a variety of different endogenous
GPCRs having different sequences.
D. Pharmaceutical Compositions
Candidate compounds selected for further development as active ingredients can be formulated into pharmaceutical compositions using techniques well known to those in the art. Suitable pharmaceutically-acceptable carriers are available to those in the art; for example, see Remington's Pharmaceutical Sciences, 16th Edition, 1980, Mack Publishing Co., (Oslo et al., eds.).
EXAMPLES
The following examples are presented for purposes of elucidation, and not limitation, of the present invention. The particular order of screening techniques set forth below is ranked for presentational efficiency. While specific nucleic acid and amino acid sequences are disclosed herein, those of ordinary skill in the art are credited with the ability to make modifications to these sequences while achieving the same or substantially similar results reported below. EXAMPLE 1 RECEPTOR EXPRESSION
1. cDNA and Vectors
The expression vector comprising GPR6 cDNA was generously supplied by Brian
O'Dowd (University of Toronto). The vector utilized for GPR6 was pRcCMV (the coding
region for GPR6 was subcloned into pCMV vector at a Hindlll-Xbal site). See, SEQ.ID.NO.:! for nucleic acid sequence and SEQ.LD.NO.:2 for the deduced amino acid
sequence of GPR6.
2. Transfection Procedure
On day one, 1X107 293 cells per 150mm plate were plated out. On day two, two
reaction tubes were prepared (the proportions to follow for each tube are per plate): tube A
was prepared by mixing 20μg DNA (e.g., pCMV vector; pCMV vector GPR6 cDNA, pCMV
vector GPR6:Fusion-Protein) in 1.2ml serum free DMEM (Irvine Scientific, Irvine, CA); tube
B was prepared by mixing 120μl lipofectamine (Gibco BRL) in 1.2ml serum free DMEM.
Tubes A and B were then admixed by inversions (several times), followed by incubation at
room temperature for 30-45min. The admixture is referred to as the "transfection mixture". Plated 293 cells were washed with IX PBS, followed by addition of 10ml serum free DMEM. 2.4ml of the transfection mixture was then added to the cells, followed by
incubation for 4hrs at 37°C/5% CO2. The transfection mixture was then removed by
aspiration, followed by the addition of 25ml of DMEM/10% Fetal Bovine Serum. Cells were
then incubated at 37°C/5% CO2. After 72hr incubation, cells were then harvested and
utilized for analysis. EXAMPLE 2 GPCR FUSION PROTEIN PREPARATION
The design of a GPC6-Fusion Protein construct was accomplished as follows: both
the 5' and 3' ends of the rat G protein Gsα (long form; Itoh, H. et al., 83 PNAS 3776 (1986))
were engineered to include a Hindlll (5'-AAGCTT-3') sequence thereon. Following confirmation of the correct sequence (including the flanking Hindlll sequences), the entire sequence was shuttled into pcDNA3.1(~) (Invitrogen, cat. no. V795-20) by subcloning using
the Hindlll restriction site of that vector. The correct orientation for the Gsα sequence was
determined after subcloning into pcDNA3.1(-). The modified pcDNA3.1(-) containing the
rat Gsα gene at Hindlll sequence was then verified; this vector was now available as a
"universal" Gsα protein vector. The pcDNA3.1(-) vector contains a variety of well-known
restriction sites upstream of the Hindlll site, thus beneficially providing the ability to insert, upstream of the Gs protein, the coding sequence of an endogenous, constitutively active GPCR. This same approach can be utilized to create other "universal" G protein vectors, and, of course, other commercially available or proprietary vectors known to "the artisan can be
utilized - the important criteria is that the sequence for the GPCR be upstream and in-frame with that of the G protein.
GPR6-Gsα Fusion Protein construct was made as follows: primers utilized were as
follows:
5'-gatcTCTAGAATGCAGGGTGCAAATCCGGCC-3' (SEQ. ΓD. NO.3, sense) 5 '-ctagGGTACCCGGACCTCGCTGGGAGACCTGGAAC-3 ' (SEQ.ID.NO.4, antisense).
The sense and anti-sense primers also contained restriction sites for Xbal and Kpnl, respectively. These restriction sites are available upstream of the HindHI site in the pcDNA3.1(-) vector. PCR was then utilized to secure the respective receptor sequences for fusion within the
Gsα universal vector disclosed above, using the following protocol for each: lOOng cDNA for
GPR6 was added to separate tubes containing 2ul of each primer (sense and anti-sense), 3uL of
lOmM dNTPs, lOuL of lOXTaqPlus™ Precision buffer, luL of TaqPlus™ Precision polymerase
(Stratagene: #600211), and 80uL of water. Reaction temperatures and cycle times were as
follows: the initial denaturing step was done at 96°C for seven minutes, and a cycle of 96°C for
30seconds, 55°C for 30 seconds, and 72°C for two minutes was repeated 30 times. A final
extension time often minutes at 72°C was done for GPR6. PCR products for GPR6 were run on
a 1% agarose gel and then purified (data not shown). The purified product was digested with
Xbal and Kpnl (New England Biolabs) and the desired inserts were isolated, purified and ligated into the Gs universal vector at the respective restriction site. The positive clones were isolated
following transformation and determined by restriction enzyme digest; expression using 293 cells was accomplished following the protocol set forth infra. The positive clone for
GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein was sequenced and made available for the direct identification of
candidate compounds. See, SEQ.ID.NO.:5 for nucleic acid sequence and SEQ.ID.NO.:6 for
deduced amino acid sequence of GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein.
EXAMPLE 3A
ASSSESMENT OF CONSTITUTIVE ACTIVITY USING ADENYLYL CYCLASE ASSAY
A Flash Plate™ Adenylyl Cyclase kit (New England Nuclear; Cat. No. SMP004A) designed for cell-based assays can be modified for use with crude plasma membranes. The Flash Plate wells can contain a scintillant coating that also contains a specific antibody recognizing cAMP. The cAMP generated in the wells can be quantitated by a direct competition for binding of radioactive cAMP tracer to the cAMP antibody. The following serves as a protocol for the measurement of changes in cAMP levels in whole cells that express receptors, e.g. GPR6 or GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein.
Transfected cells are harvested approximately twenty-four hours after transient transfection. Media was carefully aspirated off and discarded. 10ml of PBS was gently added to each dish of cells followed by careful aspiration. 1ml of Sigma cell dissociation buffer and 3ml of PBS were added to each plate. Cells were pipeted off the plate and the cell suspension is collected into a 50ml conical centrifuge tube. Cells were then centrifuged at room temperature at 1,100 rpm for 5 min. The cell pellet was carefully re-suspended into an appropriate volume of PBS (about 3ml/plate). The cells were then counted using a hemocytometer and additional PBS is added to give the appropriate number of cells (with a final concentration of about 50xl04/well). cAMP standards and Detection Buffer (comprising 1 μCi of tracer [125I cAMP (50 μl] to 11 ml Detection Buffer) was prepared and maintained in accordance with the manufacturer's instructions. Stimulation Buffer (preferably prepared fresh) for screening and contained 50ul of Stimulation Buffer, 3ul of test compound (12uM final assay concentration) and 50ul cells, Stimulation Buffer can be stored on ice until utilized. The assay can be initiated by addition of 50ul of cAMP standards to appropriate wells followed by addition of 50ul of PBSA to wells H-ll and H12. 50ul of Stimulation Buffer was added to all wells. DMSO (or selected candidate compounds) were added to appropriate wells using a pin tool capable of dispensing 3ul of compound solution, with a final assay concentration of 12uM test compound and lOOul total assay volume. The cells were then added to the wells and incubated for 60 min at room temperature. lOOul of Detection Buffer containing tracer cAMP was then added to all the wells. Plates were then incubated an additional 2 hours followed by counting in a Wallac MicroBeta scintillation counter. Values of cAMP/well
were then extrapolated from a standard cAMP curve that is contained within each assay plate.
GPR6 and GPR6:Gsα-Fusion-Protein were analyzed as above and verified to be
constitutively active, whereby GPR6:Fusion-Protein evidenced about a 4-fold increase in cAMP
over GPR6 (see, Figure 1). In the context of screening of candidate compounds, when the goal is to identify inverse agonists, agonists or partial agonists, it is preferred that the signal to noise
ratio be maximized (especially in the case of screening for inverse agonists). Thus, although it is
viable to use GPR6 itself, given the substantial increase in this ratio, the use of the GPR6:Gsα-
Fusion Protein is particularly preferred (although one of ordinary skill in the art is credited with selecting an approach that is based upon the particular needs of the artisan). It is further noted that there does not appear to be an "upper-limit" or "ceiling" for the signal such that despite the increase in signal evidenced in Figure 1, these constructs can also be used for screening to determine agonists of GPR6 (i.e., an agonist will further increase the signal).
EXAMPLE 3B
ASSESMENT OF CONSTITUTIVE ACTIVITY USING
GTP MEMBRANE BINDING SCINTILLATION PROXIMITY ASSAY
Using [35S]GTPγS binding to measure constitutive activation can be advantageous in
that: (a) [35S]GTPγS binding is genetically applicable to all G protein-coupled receptors; and
(b) [35S]GTPγS binding is proximal at the membrane surface, thereby making it less likely to
pick-up molecules which affect the intracellular cascade. Preferably, a GPCR:Fusion-Protein is utilized. The assay utilizes the ability of G protein-coupled receptors to stimulate [35S]GTPγS binding to membranes expressing the relevant receptors. Therefore, the assay
may be used to directly screen compounds at the disclosed GPR6 receptor.
A scintillation proximity assay was utilized to monitor the binding of [35S]GTPγS to
membranes expressing, e.g., the endogenous human GPR6:Gs-Fusion Protein (expressed in 293 cells). In brief, a preferred protocol for the assay is such that the assay was incubated in
20 mM HEPES, pH 7.4, binding buffer (lOOmM NaCl and lOmM MgCl2), with 0.6 nM
[35S]GTPγS and 12.5 μg membrane protein and 0.1 μM GDP for 60 minutes. The assay
plates were then centrifuged at 4000rpm for 15 minutes at room temperature and then subsequently aspirated and counted in a scintillation counter.
Using this assay, enhanced binding of [35S]GTPγS to membranes prepared from 293
cells expressing the control vector alone or the human GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein receptor
was comparatively observed. The total protein concentration used in the assay affects the
total amount of [35S]GTPγS binding for each receptor. The c.p.m. differential between the
pCMV transfected and the constitutively active GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein receptor (at
12.5ug/ml) increased from approximately 6000 c.p.m to approximately 11,600 c.p.m. protein
concentration.
Results are presented in Figure 2 and evidence that GPR6 receptor (GPR6:Gsα-Fusion
Protein) has increased activity as compared to control; this heightened activity is not the result of
autocrine stimulation in that the data were obtained from membrane preparations, as opposed to whole cell preparations.
EXAMPLE 4A DIRECT IDENTIFICATION OF INVERSE AGONISTS AND AGONIST
USING [35S]GTPγS ASSAY Although we have utilized endogenous, constitutively active GPR6 for the direct identification of candidate compounds as, e.g., inverse agonists, for reasons that are not altogether understood, infra-assay variation can become exacerbated. Preferably, then, a GPCR Fusion Protein, as disclosed above, is utilized. When such a protein is used, infra- assay variation appears to be substantially stabilized, whereby an effective signal-to-noise ratio is obtained. This has the beneficial result of allowing for a more robust direct identification of candidate compounds. The following protocol is preferred:
1. Membrane Preparation
Membranes expressing the GPCR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein (see Example 2) and" for use in the direct identification of candidate compounds as inverse agonists, agonists or partial agonists were prepared as follows:
(a) Materials
Membrane Scrape Buffer was comprised of 20mM HEPES and lOmM EDTA, pH 7.4; Membrane Wash Buffer was comprised of 20 mM HEPES and 0.1 mM EDTA, pH 7.4; Binding Buffer was comprised of 20mM HEPES, 100 mM NaCl, and 10 mM MgCl2, pH 7.4
(b) Procedure
All materials were kept on ice throughout the procedure. Firstly, the media was aspirated from a confluent monolayer of cells, followed by rinse with 10ml cold PBS, followed by aspiration. Thereafter, 5ml of membrane Scrape Buffer was added to scrape cells; this was followed by transfer of cellular extract into 50ml centrifuge tubes (centrifuged at 20,000 rpm for 17 minutes at 4°C). Thereafter, the supernatant was aspirated and the pellet was resuspended in 30ml Membrane Wash Buffer followed by centrifuge at 20,000 rpm for 17 minutes at 4°C. The supernatant was then aspirated and the pellet resuspended in Binding Buffer. This was then homogenized using a Brinkman polytron™ homogenizer (15-20 second bursts until the all material was in suspension). This is referred to herein as "Membrane Protein".
2. Bradford Protein Assay
Following the homogenization, protein concentration of the membranes was determined using the Bradford Protein Assay (protein can be diluted to about 1.5mg/ml, aliquoted and frozen (-80°C) for later use; when frozen, protocol for use is as follows: on the day of the assay, frozen Membrane Protein is thawed at room temperature, followed by vortex and then homogenized with a polytron at about 12 x 1,000 rpm for about 5-10 seconds; it is noted that for multiple preparations, the homogenizer should be thoroughly cleaned between homoginezation of different preparations). Membrane protein concentrations are reassessed and normalized to CMV where the optimal protein concentration is between 0.25ug/ul and 0.30ug/ul.
(a) Materials
Binding Buffer (as per above); Bradford Dye Reagent; Bradford Protein Standard were utilized, following manufacturer instructions (Biorad, cat. no. 500-0006).
(b) Procedure
Duplicate tubes were prepared, one including the membrane, and one as a control "blank". Each contained 8 OOul Binding Buffer. Thereafter, lOul of Bradford Protein Standard (lmg/ml) was added to each tube, and lOul of membrane Protein was then added to just one tube (not the blanlc). Thereafter, 200ul of Bradford Dye Reagent was added to each tube, followed by vortex of each. After five (5) minutes, the tubes were re- vortexed and the material therein was transfened to cuvettes. The cuvettes were then read using a CECIL 3041 spectrophotometer, at wavelength 595. 3. Direct Identification Assay
(a) Materials
GDP Buffer consisted of 37.5 ml Binding Buffer and 2mg GDP (Sigma, cat. no. G- 7127), followed by a series of dilutions in Binding Buffer to obtain 0.2 uM GDP (final concentration of GDP in each well was 0.1 uM GDP); each well comprising a candidate compound, had a final volume of 200ul consisting of lOOul GDP Buffer (final concentration, O.luM GDP), 50ul Membrane Protein (12.5ug) in Binding Buffer, and 50ul [35S]GTPγS (0.6 nM) in Binding Buffer (2.5 ul [35S]GTPγS per 10ml Binding Buffer).
(b) Procedure
Candidate compounds (Tripos, Inc., St. Louis, MO) were received in 96-well plates (these can be frozen at -80°C). Membrane Protein (or membranes with expression vector excluding the GPR6:Gsα-Fusion Protein, as control), were homogenized briefly until in suspension. Protein concentration was then determined using the Bradford Protein Assay set forth above. Membrane Protein (and control) was then diluted to 0.25mg/ml in Binding Buffer (final assay concentration, 12.5ug/well). Thereafter, 100 ul GDP Buffer was added to each well of a Wallac Scmtistrip™ (Wallac). A 5ul pin-tool was then used to transfer 5 ul of a candidate compound into such well (i.e., 5ul in total assay volume of 200 ul is a 1:40 ratio such that the final screening concentration of the candidate compound is lOuM). Again, to avoid contamination, after each transfer step the pin tool was rinsed in three reservoirs comprising water (IX), ethanol (IX) and water (2X) - excess liquid should be shaken from the tool after each rinse and dried with paper towels and kimwipes™. Thereafter, 50 ul of Membrane Protein was added to each well (a control well comprising membranes without the GPCR Fusion Protein is also utilized), and pre-incubated for 5-10 minutes at room temperature (the plates were covered with foil in that the candidate compounds obtained from
Tripos are light sensitive). Thereafter, 50 ul of [35S]GTPγS (0.6 nM) in Binding Buffer was
added to each well, followed by incubation on a shaker for 60 minutes at room temperature
(again, in this example, plates were covered with foil). The assay was then stopped by
spinning of the plates at 4000 RPM for 15 minutes at 22°C. The plates were then aspirated
with an 8 channel manifold and sealed with plastic plate covers. The plates were then read on a Wallac 1450 using setting "Prot. #37" (as per manufacturer instructions).
EXAMPLE 4B DIRECT IDENTIFICATION OF "LEADS"
We believe that it is important to note that the following results have been obtained
using an orphan receptor; as the data support, it is possible, using the techniques disclosed herein, to directly identify candidate compounds that modulate the orphan receptor as inverse agonists, agonists and partial agonists, directly from a primary screen; indeed, the methods disclosed herein are sensitive enough to allow for direct identification of both inverse agonist and agonist modulators on the same assay plate.
The initial or "primary" screen designed to directly identify, e.g., human GPR6
receptor inverse agonists, consisted of the membrane-based GTPγS binding assay of Example
4A utilizing membranes prepared from 293 stable cells. Candidate compounds directly
identified as inhibiting receptor-mediated increases in GTPγS as set forth below were
considered active "leads". Primary assay leads were then re-tested in the same assay to reconfirm their inverse agonist activity. If primary assay hits were reconfirmed active (50% or greater inhibition), and therefore directly identified as, e.g., an inverse agonist, additional
candidate compounds were synthesized based upon the structures of the reconfirmed hits (geared towards, e.g., improvement in the characteristics of the compounds) whereby the directed library compounds (Arena Phannaceuticals, Inc., San Diego CA) were then evaluated: The last step in secondary assay evaluation was to determine if test compounds were capable of inhibiting cAMP accumulation (i.e., adenylate cyclase-based assay, disclosed below in Example 4C). This final assay confirms that the directly identified compounds retained inverse agonist properties.
A representative screening assay plate (96 well format) result is presented in Figure 3. Each bar represents the results for a different compound in each well, plus the GPR6:Gs Fusion Protein. The representative results presented i Figure 3 also provide standard deviations based upon the mean results of each plate ("m") and the mean plus two standard deviations ("m+2sd") and the mean minus two standard deviations ("m-2sd"). Our arbitrary preference for selection of inverse agonists as "leads" from the primary screen involves selection of candidate compounds that reduce the per cent response by at least the mean plate response, minus two standard deviations. Based on this selection process, the candidate compounds in the following wells were directly identified as putative inverse agonists to the GPR6 receptor: A7; B2; F6; G6 and H6. Further evaluation (using a non-GPR6 receptor) of compounds designated in wells A7, B2, F6 and G6 indicated that these compounds were non-specific to GPR6:Gs-Fusion Protein receptor and thus may instead act to uncouple the G protein from the GPR6 receptor (data not shown). Thus, the candidate compound of well H6, designated "AREl 12" was selected for further evaluation.
It is preferred that following such direct identification, IC 0 (inverse agonist) or EC50 (agonist) values be determined; those having ordinary skill in the art are credited with utilizing IC50 and EC50 assay protocols of choice. Figure 4 provides a representative IC50 curve for compound AREl 12 using the assay protocol of Example 4A.
EXAMPLE 4C CYCLIC AMP CONFIRMATION ASSAY
Using an independent assay approach to provide confirmation of a directly identified candidate compound as set forth above, it is preferred that a confirmation assay then be utilized. In this case, the preferred confirmation assay is membrane-based cyclic AMP
(cAMP) assay.
A modified Flash Plate™ Adenylyl Cyclase kit (New England Nuclear; Cat. No. SMP004A) was utilized for confirmation of candidate compounds directly identified as inverse
agonists and agonists to endogenous, constitutively activated orphan GPCRs in accordance with
the following protocol.
Transfected stable cells were harvested approximately three days after transfection. Membranes were prepared by homogenization of suspended cells in buffer containing 20mM HEPES, pH 7.4 and lOmM MgCl2. Homogenization was performed on ice using a Brinkman
Polytron™ for approximately 10 seconds. The resulting homogenate was centrifuged at 20,000 rpm for 20 minutes at 4°C. The resulting pellet was then resuspended in buffer containing 20mM HEPES, pH 7.4 and 0.1 mM EDTA, homogenized for 10 seconds, followed by centrifugation at 20,000 rpm for 20 minutes at 4°C. The resulting pellet can be
stored at -80°C until utilized. On the day of direct identification screening, the membrane
pellet is slowly thawed at room temperature, resuspended in buffer containing 20mM
HEPES, pH 7.4, lOOmM NaCl and lOmM MgCL2, to yield a final protein concentration of
0.60mg/ml (the resuspended membranes are placed on ice until use). cAMP standards and Detection Buffer (comprising 2 μCi of tracer [125I cAMP (50μl] to 11 ml Detection Buffer) were prepared and maintained in accordance with the manufacturer's instructions. Assay Buffer was prepared fresh for screening and contained
20mM HEPES, pH 7.4, lOOmM NaCl, lOmM MgCl2, 20mM phospocreatine (Sigma), 0.1 units/ml creatine phosphokinase (Sigma), 50 μM GTP (Sigma), 0.2 mM ATP (Sigma) and
0.6mM isobuty 1-methyl xanthine (IBMX); Assay Buffer can be stored on ice until utilized.
Candidate compounds identified as per above (if frozen, thawed at room temperature) were added to plate wells (3μl/well; 12μM final assay concentration), together with 50 μl Membrane Protein (30μg/well) and 50μl of Assay Buffer. This admixture was then incubated for 30 minutes at room temperature, with gentle shaking.
Following the incubation, lOOμl of Detection Buffer was added to each well, followed by incubation for 2-20 hours. Plates were subsequently aspirated and then counted in a Wallac MicroBeta™ plate reader using "Prot. #31" (as per manufacturer instructions).
The following Table A lists the IC5o values determined utilizing the foregoing cAMP assay.
Table A
Figure imgf000031_0001
Preferably, for IC50 determinations, the dose response range at the maximum is between
80 and 120 percent control ("% control"), and at the mhiimum between 20 and -20 percent control, although such parameters can be a matter of choice for the artisan, depending upon the particular needs of the artisan.
EXAMPLE 5 SCREENING OF DIRECTED LIBRARY
Based upon the foregoing results, structure activity analysis of the AREl 12
compound suggested that a series of derivatives of ARE 112, N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l- c]-l,2,3-dithiazol-3-ylidene), as well as derivatives of AREl 11 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-
carbothioyl) would exhibit similar GPR6 inverse agonist activity and selectivity. A directed
library series of derivatives of N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,3-dithiazol-3-ylidene) and of N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l -carbothioyl) were synthesized (see Examples 8 and 9,
infra). IC50 values were determined using the assays indicated below, by talcing the mean values of the nmnber of assays (placed in brackets), +/- the standard deviation. These, too were assessed using the above protocols, and results are summarized below in Table B: Table B
Figure imgf000032_0001
Figure imgf000033_0001
Figure imgf000034_0001
N/D = data not yet determined
EXAMPLE 6 IN VIVO ANALYSIS
1. Food/Water Intake and Body Weight in 24-Hour Food-Deprived Animals
The profile of AREl 12 from the in vitro functional assays suggested that this
compound exhibits selective GPR6 inverse agonist properties. An in vivo assessment of GPR6 inverse agonist was accomplished by determining the effects of AREl 12 on food intake after food deprivation in rats. Food deprivation was used to induce higher than normal eating behavior (e.g., control/vehicle-treated animals were hyperphagic).
The animals (male Sprague-Dawley rats were used for the following experiments) were food deprived for 24 hr, and then injected intraperitoneally (IP) with 0, 6.75, 13.5, 27 and 54mg/kg of compound AREl 12. After 30 min, rats were introduced to standard rat chow pellets and observed thereafter for a period of 6.5 hours post-injection.
Data evidence that animals treated IP with compound AREl 12 exhibit decreased food
intake, water intake and body weight gain. In Figure 5 A, at 1.5 hours after injection, vehicle treated animals consumed about 6grams of food, while AREl 12 treated (54mg/kg) consumed
3g of food. As time progressed, the data indicate that vehicle-treated ate substantially more food (up to 14g at 6.5 hours post-injection), while the AREl 12 treated, particularly animals treated with 54 mg/kg of AREl 12, consumed 4 g (see, Figure 5A). Four and 5 fold decreases in water intake at doses of 27 and 54 mg/kg, respectively, were also evidenced by
the data, which appear to parallel the decreased amount of food eaten. (See, Figure 5B). Vehicle treated rats evidenced a body weight gain of 20 g, whereas AREl 12 treated rats evidenced the following: 13.5 mg/kg treatment - llg weight gain; 27 and 54 mg/kg treatment
- no weight gain (see, Figure 5C).
2. Basal Food/Water Intake and Body Weight in Non-Food Deprived Animals
Animals were also observed during their most active period (dark cycle), and both basal food and water intake were measured. In this test, animals were not deprived of food but were instead observed for normal activity.
Animals were administered AREl 12 at 0, 6.75, 13.5, 27 and 54 mg kg, IP 30 min
prior to the beginning of their dark cycle (i.e. 6:30 pm) and were then exposed to standard rat
chow pellets (i.e. 30 min after compound administration) and observed for a period of 15.5 hr
post administration. Data, presented in Figure 6A, evidence that animals administered with AREl 12 did not eat as much as animals administered vehicle. For example, the vehicle treated animals consumed 9 g of food over a period of 4 hrs, whereas animals treated with dose of 13.5mg/kg and 54 mg/kg consumed less than half this amount over this same period (4 and 2 g of food, respectively). Similar to the food-deprived rats, the non-deprived rats also
exhibited a decrease in water intake and body weight gain. (See, Figures 6B and 6C).
Long-term effects (60 days) of AREl 12 were also examined. Animals (treatment, n= 4; control, n = 5) were treated once a day intraperitoneally with AREl 12 for 22' days and
assessed for a period of 60 days. On days 1 to 3, animals treated with dose of 13.5mg/kg
initially lost body weight and between day 4 and day 31, animals gradually gained weight,
although still weighing less than vehicle treated animals. After day 31 and through day 60, the data support the position that there was a significant difference in body weight between the treated animals and the vehicle animals. The data support the conclusion that daily, repeated administration of AREl 12 (at 13.5mg/kg) induces a long-tenn decrease in body weight in non-food deprived rats. See, Figure 11.
3. Intracerebroventricular (ICV) Administration of ARE112 on Food-Deprived Animals
a. Surgery
Animals were prepared with an ICV cannula aimed above the lateral ventricle. For this
surgery, animals were placed under general anesthesia using continuous inhalation of isoflurane and secured in a Kopf stereotaxic instrument. Surgery was performed in a dedicated surgery room, using sterile instruments, surgical gloves and aseptic procedures to prevent clinical infections. The surgical site was shaved and disinfected with betadine solution and alcohol. Animals were observed continuously for the level of anesthesia by testing for the animals'
responses to tail- or paw-pinch. A cannula made of 23 gauge stainless steel tubing (7mm long) was lowered to a point 1mm above the ventricle, using coordinates: A/P -0.6 mm from bregma,
M/L+/- 2.0 mm from bregma, D/V 3.2 mm below skull surface. The guide was anchored to the skull with three stainless steel screws and dental cement. Coordinates were based on stereotaxic atlas such as Paxinos and Watson sterotaxic atlas (Paxinos, G. and Watson, C, The Rat Brain,
New York, Academic Press, 1982). After cannula implantation, a 30-gauge stainless steel dummy stylet was inserted into the cannula. At the conclusion of surgery, a heat source (heat lamp directed towards one half of recovery cage) was used to maintain body temperature while the animals recovered from anesthesia. Animals were allowed at least one week of recovery after surgery before ICV injection of compound was performed.
b. Administration of AREl 12
Animals were food-deprived for 24 hours prior to administration of the compound. For ICV injection, the dummy stylet was removed from the implanted cannula, and a 30- gauge stainless steel injector cannula containing AREl 12 suspension in a 45% cyclodextrin solution was inserted to a depth 1.5mm beyond the ventral tip of the implanted cannula. The other (non-inserted) end of the injector cannula was attached to 60 cm of PEI 0 tubing containing the compound suspension, which was attached at the free end of tubmg to a 25 μl Hamilton syringe. Ten microliters of AREl 12 suspension (containing, 0, 25, 50, and lOOnmol) were then delivered via gentle and even mechanical pressure to the plunger of the Hamilton syringe. The volume of injection was verified by marks on the PE 10 tubing previously calibrated with a 10 μl Hamilton syringe. At the conclusion of injection, any fluid observed from the dorsal tip of the implanted cannula upon withdrawal of the injector cannula was noted, and the dummy stylet was inserted into the implanted cannula.
Data evidence that after two hours post-administration of AREl 12 at all doses, animals consumed substantially less food (about 6 fold less food was consumed). After three hours, the vehicle rat consumed about 2.5 grams of food, while AREl 12 treated rats consumed about 1.0 grams or less. See, Figure 7A. Treated animals (at 25 and 50 nmol) drank a comparable amount of water as the vehicle, i.e., about 17 grams. At higher doses (e.g., 100 nmol), about less than half that amount was consumed. See, Figure 7C. The data evidence, consistent with the data developed using IP administration, that at a dose of lOOnmol of AREl 12, the ICV treated animal gained substantially less weight (e.g., 5grams) when evaluated against the vehicle, which gained about 12 grams. See, Figure 7C.
4. Effect of ARE112 on Motor Function
The effect of AREl 12 on motor function was also examined. Motor function was assessed by using automated locomotor activity cages. Animals were placed in a standard rodent cage sunounded by photocell, which allowed for automated recording of motor activity. Animals were under no motivational constraints and were free to move around the cage.
Male Sprague-Dawley rats (n = 4-9 per dose) were administered AREl 12 (IP) prior to placement into in locomotor activity cages. Data are presented in Figure 8. Based upon the data, it can be concluded that AREl 12 does not affect locomotor activity where animals were exposed to locomotor activity cages for 1.5 hour immediately after injection of AREl 12. While the data support the conclusion that AREl 12 decreases locomotor activity in rats 16 hours post-injection (see, Figure 8), thus indicating that AREl 12 has some sedative activity, (e.g., the animals appear relaxed and demonstrate little to no anxiety-like behavior), this sedative activity is mild and cannot, in and of itself, account for the decrease in food intake.
As further evidence of this mild sedative activity, animals were measured to detennine their startle reflexes. In this assay, AREl 12 was orally administered in non-food deprived rats 4.5 hours prior to testing. Animals were subjected to a pre-pulse of 12db followed by a 120db pulse and subsequently measured for the height in which the animals jumped. Figure 12 shows the average startle amplitude of administered rats (i.e., at 6.75, 13.5 and 54mg/kg). Treated rats at 13.5 and 54mg/kg did not jump as high, as compared to the vehicle and rats treated at the low dose of 6.75mg/kg, in response to the pulse. This data further suggests that at a higher dosage of AREl 12, animals demonstrate a mild sedative activity.
5. Oral Availability: AREl 12
Based upon the in vivo data developed, oral bioavailability of compound AREl 12 was determined. The compound was administered by oral gavage at doses ranging from 6.75 to 54 mg/kg. The data presented in Figures 9A and 9B support the conclusion that oral administration of AREl 12 also decreases food intake in both food-deprived and non-food deprived rats. The effect of AREl 12 was dose-dependent and comparable to the effect observed after IP administration. In Figure 9A, rats were deprived 24 hours prior to oral administration of the compound. In this assay, the vehicle- treated rats at 2.5 hours consumed about 6 grams of food while injected rats; particularly rats administered with 27 and 54mg/kg of AREl 12, ate about 6 and 4 grams, respectively. As time progressed, the vehicle rat consumed significantly more, about 14 grams at 8 hours post-administration, while treated rats (at 27 and 54 mg/kg) consumed about 8 grams and 6grams, respectively. (See, Figure
9A).
In a second assay, rats were treated with AREl 12 by oral gavage but were not food deprived. Data evidence an even greater decrease in food intake, such that at 18 hours post administration of the compound, the vehicle rats had consumed about 15 grams of food while the injected rats (at all doses) ate 5grams or less; about a three fold decrease in food consumption when treated with compound AREl 12. (See, Figure 9B). These data support the conclusion that AREl 12 is orally active.
6. Assessment of Other Compounds.
Several other GPR6 inverse agonists were also assessed under 24-hour food deprived conditions, with PO administration. The analogs listed below were tested at 200μmol/kg, which is equivalent to 54mg/kg. In addition, AREl 14 was also assessed at lOOμmol/kg (27μmol kg). Data are summarized below in Table C: Table C
Figure imgf000040_0001
In a second assay, tested under the same conditions, several other analogs were assessed at lOOμmol/kg. Data are summarized below in Table D.
Table D
Figure imgf000040_0002
In Figure 10, rats were deprived 24 hours prior to oral administration of the compound. In this assay, analogs ARE130, ARE135, ARE136, and ARE140, were administered at a dose of lOOμmol/kg. Three analogs, particularly, AREl 30, AREl 36 and
ARE140 evidenced a slow intake of food (e.g., about 1 to 1.5 grams every two hours) over an eight hour period post-administration; while the vehicle rat consumed about 2 to 2.5 grams food every two hours. Similar to the vehicle rat, analog ARE135, an opened ring structure, evidenced that over an eight hour period post-administration the rats increasingly consumed about 2.5 grams every two hours. (See, Figure 10A). Furthermore, the body weight of the vehicle rat and administered rats with analog ARE135 gained about 19.5 grams. On the other hand, the closed ring structures evidenced a decrease in body weight gain as follows:
AREl 12-6 grams, ARE130-9 grams, ARE136-11 grams and ARE140-14 grams. See, Figure
IOC.
The treated rats, particularly AREl 30 and ARE 136, drank less amount of water compared to the vehicle animal, i.e., about 10 grams and 4 grams less, respectively; while analogs ARE135 and ARE140 drank a comparable amount (i.e., about 19 grams). See, Figure 10B. These data suggests that the closed ring structures, preferably AREl 12, ARE130, ARE136 and ARE140; more preferably AREl 12 and ARE130; and most preferably AREl 12, are specific to the G protein-coupled receptor six.
Table E below lists several IC50 values for the analogs of AREl 12. IC50 values were derived using the GTP Assay as disclosed in Example 4A. At low concentrations of analogs ARE 130, ARE 136 and ARE 140 GPR6 is activated, thus stimulating the conversion of GTP to GDP. This data supports the suggestion that closed ring structures are selective inverse agonists for GPR6. Table E
Figure imgf000042_0001
EXAMPLE 7 GPR6 INVERSE AGONISTS
Based upon the patent disclosure and the information provided herein, one of ordinary skill in the art is credited with the ability to directly identify candidate compounds as inverse agonists, agonists and partial agonists to GPR6. Most preferably, these will be small molecule
compounds that have not evidenced these characteristics (i.e., selective for GPR6) prior to such direct identification. For agonists, the objective in the screening is to find small molecules that increase the measured signal.
Below, we disclose our most preferred small molecule GPR6 inverse agonists. It is
recognized that various stereoisomeric forms of the compounds disclosed herein may exist. It is intended that the present invention include racemates, individual enantiomers, and mixtures
thereof.
1. Open Chain Aryl Series
As a first series of GPR6 inverse agonists, disclosed are "open chain aryls" represented structurally as follows (note: if the selection of one or more of R8, R9, R10, and R11 results in an asymmetric or diastereomeric molecule, then the racemic mixtures, the diastereomeric mixtures and each of the separated (+) and (-) enantiomers or diastereomers
are within the scope of the disclosed series, and within the scope of the claims to follow):
Figure imgf000043_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCQR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain
selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl,
C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; o π i n 11
R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl andr alkylaryl; R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3)CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring, said aryl ring being substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered cyclic structure which may be either saturated or unsaturated and that may contain up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5H11, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCHs, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2; or wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2;SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
The following provisos, preferentially noted, may apply whereby when R6, R7, R8, R9, R10, and
R11 are all H, then at least one of R1, R R5 and IT is other than H; and when R\ R , R , R3, R6, R7, R8, R9, R10, and R11 are all H, then R3 is not Cl, CH3, or OCH3; and when R1, R5, R6, R7, R8, R9, R10, and R11 are all H, then R2, R3, and R4 are not OCH3.
An "aryl moiety" can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to four hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a six membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable Cι-8 alkyl groups include, but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl. Throughout this specificaiton, the term "alkylaryl" in intended to mean alkyl moieties having an aryl moiety attached thereto, for example benzyl groups.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tetrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000047_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl andr alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNRι34, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH )mCO H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC Hll5 SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3; SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3;CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring, said aryl ring being substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered cyclic structure which may be either saturated or unsaturated and that may contain up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CCl3jCH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hu, OC6H„, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hl l5 SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3> SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2; or
wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a
chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
2. Closed chain aryl series
A second series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "closed chain aryls" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000050_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12, OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and Rs can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, Cι_8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH )nNRι34, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5,
OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ,
SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3,
SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7,
COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3)CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13> CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3;N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H), SC5Hπ, SC6Hll5 SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl;
The following provisos, preferentially noted, may apply whereby when R6, R7, R8, R9, R10, and R11 are all H, then at least one of R1, R2, R3 and R4 is other than H; and when R1, R2, R4, R5, R6, R7, R8, R9, R10, and R11 are all H, then R3 is not Cl, CH3, or OCH3; and when R1, R5, R6,
R7, R8, R9, R10, and R11 are all H, then R2, R3, and R4 are not OCH3.
An "aryl moiety" can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle.
Examples of suitable Cι-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pyrrolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tetrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000054_0001
wherein R , R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following: H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7,
NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hl OC6Hπ,
OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5,
OSO2C3H , OSO2C4H , SH, SCH3, SC H5, SC H , SC4H , SC4H , SC5H9, SC5Hπ,
SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3,
SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5) , SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7,
COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R 3 and/or R1 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2> CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2)SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13,CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6H„, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3; SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 fonn an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R1S is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, andC2-8 alkenyl;
3. Open chain 6 membered heteroaryl series A third series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "open chain 6 membered heteroaryls" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000058_0001
wherein at least one of V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the provisio that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and
wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2>
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl,
branched allcyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; R12 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-s cycloalkyl, C4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H , SC4H7, SC4H , SC5H9, SC5Hl l5 SCβHii, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3)CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2;SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6H„, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5H11, SC6Hn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3Hv)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2> CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl;
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable -s alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl. Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing open chain 6 membered heteroaryl series.
4. Closed chain 6 membered heteroaryl series.
A fourth series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "closed chain 6 membered heteroaryls" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000062_0001
wherein at least one of V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the provisio that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
R1, R2, R3, R4, and Rs are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R1 , (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2) CO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSOzCφBg, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7,
COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H , SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC Hlls SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2) SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, -g straight chain alkyl , branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl;
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable C1-8 allcyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl;
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pyrrolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said
receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing closed chain 6 membered heteroaryl series.
5. Open chain 5 membered heteroaryl (sub-series a).
A fifth series of GPR6 inverse agonists are "open chain 5 membered heteraryls" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000066_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR4, O and S;
W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR , CR , and CR , with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
1 9 1 •
R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-s alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, .s straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3> N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2 H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H-7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2;SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H , NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hn, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC63„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable C1-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing open chain 5 membered heteroaryl series.
6. Closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl (sub-series a) As a sixth series of GPR6 inverse agonists, disclosed are "closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl sub-series a" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000070_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR4, O and S;
W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR1, CR2, and CR3, with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14, NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12, OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3, PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
Rs, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNRi3R14, (CH2)mSO3H, (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 or m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H-7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6Hi3, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H , SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC Hl 5 SC6Hιι, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3;CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH,
NΗCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3,
NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7,
OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5,
OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH,
SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H , SC4H , SC4H9, SC5H , SC5H11, SC6Hπ, SC6Hj3„ SCF3,
SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NΗCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2; SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Cι_8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable C1-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl. Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl series.
7. Open chain 5 membered heteroaryl (sub-series b)
As a seventh series of GPR6 inverse agonist, disclosed are "open chain 5 membered
heteroaryl sub-series b" represented structurally as follows:
wherein Y is selected from NR4, O or S;
W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12, OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2) SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3..8 cycloalkyl, C4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aiyl, alkylaryl, (CH^n R^Ru, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6; R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hn, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R and/or R1 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2)SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13; CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3)N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6H„, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5) , SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle;
Examples of suitable Cι-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl, quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing open chain 5 membered heteroaryl series. 8. Closed chain 5 membered heteroaryl (sub-series b) As an eighth series of GPR6 inverse agonists, disclosed are "closed chain 5 memebered heteroaryl sub-series b" represented structurally as follows:
Figure imgf000078_0001
wherein Y is selected from NR4, O or S;
W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONH13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2> SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5; R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNRι3R1 , (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13> CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H11, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5,
OSO2C3H7, OSOzC^g, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ,
SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3,
SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7,
COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3;CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 fonn part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3;N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hl l5 SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
An aryl moiety can be a 5 or 6 membered aromatic heterocyclic ring (containing up to 4 hetero atoms independently selected from N, O, or S) or a 6 membered aromatic non- heterocyclic ring or a polycycle; Examples of suitable C1-8 alkyl groups include but art not limited to methyl, ethyl, n-propyl, i-propyl, n-butyl, and t-butyl.
Examples of 5 or 6 membered ring moieties include, but are not restricted to, phenyl, furanyl, thienyl, imidazolyl, pyridyl, pynolyl, oxazolyl, isoxazolyl, triazolyl, pyrazolyl, tefrazolyl, thiazolyl and isothiazolyl. Examples of polycycle moieties include, but are not restricted to, naphthyl, benzothiazolyl, benzofuranyl, benzimidazolyl, quinolyl, isoquinolyl, indolyl,
quinoxalinyl, quinazolinyl and benzothienyl.
Further disclosed is a method of modulating the GPR6 receptor by contacting said receptor with a small molecule structurally represented by the foregoing closed chain 5 memebered heteroaryl sub-series
EXAMPLE 8A SYNTHETIC APPROACHES
The compounds disclosed in this invention may be readily prepared according to a variety of synthetic manipulations, all of which would be familiar to one skilled in the art. In the general syntheses set forth below, the labeled substituents "R" have the same identifications as set out in the definitions of the compounds disclosed below.
Figure imgf000083_0001
Acetone, Δ
Figure imgf000083_0002
(I)
(ii)
Figure imgf000083_0003
(III) (IV) x HCI
NH4OH EtOH, rt
Figure imgf000083_0004
(V)
In the approaches disclosed below, "Protocol A" is the synthetic approach up to formula (III), and "Protocol B" is the synthetic approach up to formula (V). It is noted that in each of these approaches, the compound produced by Protocol A is then in turn used as the starting material for the compound produced by Protocol B.
Compounds of formulas (III) and (V) or a solvate or physiologically functional derivative thereof can be used as active ingredients in pharmaceutical compositions, specifically as a GPR6 inverse agonists. The data developed herein supports the conclusion that GPR6 inverse agonists are of use for the treatment or prophylaxis of clinical obesity or overweight disorders in mammals, including, but not limited to, human. Compounds of the formulas (HI) and (V) may be administered by oral, sublingual, parenteral, rectal, topical administration or by a transdermal patch. Transdermal patches dispense a drug at a controlled rate by presenting the drug for absorption in an efficient manner with a minimum of degradation of the drug. Typically, transdermal patches comprise an impermeable backing layer, a single pressure sensitive adhesive and a removable protective layer with a release liner. One of ordinary skill in the art will understand and appreciate the techniques appropriate for manufacturing a desired efficacious transdermal patch based upon the needs of the artisan.
In addition to the neutral forms of compounds of formulas (III) and (V) by appropriate addition of an ionizable substituent, which does not alter the receptor specificity of the compound, physiologically acceptable salts of the compounds may also be formed and used as therapeutic agents. Different amounts of the compounds of formulas (III) and (V) will be required to achieve the desired biological effect. The amount will depend on factors such as the specific compound, the use for which it is intended, the means of administration, and the condition of the treated individual - all of these dosmg parameters are within the level of one of ordinary skill in the medicinal arts. A typical dose may be expected to fall in the range of 0.001 to 200 mg per kilogram of body weight of the mammal. Unit doses may contain from 1 to 200 mg of the compounds of formula (III) or (V) and may be administered one or more times a day, individually or in multiples. In the case of the salt or solvate of a compound of formulas (IH) and (V), the dose is based on the cation (for salts) or the unsolvated compound.
Compositions, including, but not limited to, pharmaceutical compositions, comprising at least one compound of formulas (III) and (V) and/or an acceptable salt or solvate thereof (e.g., a pharmaceutically acceptable salt or solvate) as an active ingredient combined with at least one carrier or excipient (e.g., pharmaceutical carrier or excipient). Pharmaceutical compositions may be used in the treatment of clinical conditions for which a GPR6 inverse agonist is indicated. At least one compound of fonnula (III) and (V) may be combined with the carrier in either solid or liquid form in a unit dose formulation. The pharmaceutical carrier must be compatible with the other ingredients in the composition and must be tolerated by the individual recipient. Other physiologically active ingredients may be incorporated into the pharmaceutical composition of the invention if desired, and if such ingredients are compatible with the other ingredients in the composition. Formulations may be prepared by any suitable method, typically by uniformly mixing the active compound(s) with liquids or finely divided solid carriers, or both, in the required proportions, and then, if necessary, forming the resulting mixture into a desired shape.
Conventional excipients, such as binding agents, fillers, acceptable wetting agents, tabletting lubricants, and disintegrants may be used i tablets and capsules for oral administration. Liquid preparations for oral aciministration may be in the form of solutions, emulsions, aqueous or oily suspensions, and syrups. Alternatively, the oral preparations may be in the form of dry powder that can be reconstituted with water or another suitable liquid vehicle before use. Additional additives such as suspending or emulsifying agents, non-aqueous vehicles (including edible oils), preservatives, and flavorings and colorants may be added to the liquid preparations. Parenteral dosage forms may be prepared by dissolving the compound of the invention in a suitable liquid vehicle and filter sterilizing the solution before filling and sealing an appropriate vial or ampoule. These are just a few examples of the many appropriate methods well known in the art for preparing dosage forms. It is noted that when the GPR6 inverse agonists are utilized as active ingredients in a pharmaceutical composition, these are not intended for use only in humans, but in other non- human mammals as well. Indeed, recent advances in the area of animal health-care mandate that consideration be given for the use of GPR6 inverse agonists for the treatment of obesity in domestic animals (e.g., cats and dogs), and GPR6 agonists in other domestic animals where no disease or disorder is evident (e.g., food-oriented animals such as cows, chickens, fish, etc.). Those of ordinary skill in the art are readily credited with understanding the utility of such compounds in such settings.
Below are structural representations of compounds that have been determined to exhibit similar GPR6 inverse agonist activity and selectivity as that of compound AREl 12.
AREl 11 AREl 12
Figure imgf000086_0001
Figure imgf000086_0002
AREl 15 ARE116
Figure imgf000086_0003
ARE117. ARE118
Figure imgf000087_0001
ARE119 ARE120
Figure imgf000087_0002
ARE121 ARE122
Figure imgf000087_0003
ARE123 ARE124
Figure imgf000087_0004
ARE125 A E126
Figure imgf000087_0005
Figure imgf000087_0006
ARE129 ARE130
Figure imgf000088_0001
ARE131 ARE132
Figure imgf000088_0002
ARE133 ARE134
Figure imgf000088_0003
ARE135 ARE136
Figure imgf000088_0004
ARE137 ARE138
Figure imgf000088_0005
Figure imgf000088_0006
ARE141 ARE142
Figure imgf000089_0001
ARE143 ARE144
Figure imgf000089_0002
ARE145 ARE146
Figure imgf000089_0003
ARE149 ARE150
Figure imgf000089_0004
ARE151 ARE152
Figure imgf000089_0005
ARE153 ARE154
Figure imgf000090_0001
ARE155 ARE156
Figure imgf000090_0002
EXAMPLE 8B PPREPARATION OF COMPOUNDS ARElll - ARE156
Mass spectra were recorded on a PE Sciex API 150 EX mass spectrometer linked to a
Shimadzu dual pump (two LC8 pumps) HPLC using a CombiScreen C18 reverse phase column
(50 mm x 4.6 mm i.d.). Gradient elution was over 5 minutes with 95% water containing 0.05%
TFA)/5% acetonitrile containing 0.35% TFA down to 100% acetonitrile at a flow rate of
3.5ml/nιin. Samples eluting from the HPLC were routinely monitored at 220nm using a
Shimadzu SPD-10AVP detector unless otlierwise stated. All reagents were purchased from commercial sources.
Preparation 1
Preparation and Analysis of
AREl 11 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-thiophene-2-carboxamide and
ARE112 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazor2,l-c1-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yIidene)-thiophen-2- carboxamide
The following synthetic protocols were used to generate each of the compounds below: Protocol A:
To a freshly prepared solution of potassium thiocyanate (2.14g, 22mmol) in dry acetone (80ml), thiophene-2 -carbonyl chloride (2.93g, 20mmol) was added dropwise at room temperature; the reaction mixture was then heated under a reflux for 15 min to give thiophene-2-carbonyl isothiocyanate in situ as a yellow suspension. The heating was stopped and 2-imidazolidinethione (2.04g, 20mmol) was added. The mixture was then heated under reflux for an additional 4 hours before being allowed to cool followed by stirring at room temperature overnight (15 hours). 50 ml of water was added and the mixture was further stined at room temperature for a few minutes. The resulting precipitate was collected by filtration and washed with water, water/methanol (1:1) and methanol to give the compound AREl 11 (2.865g, yield - 53%)
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 272.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C9H9N3OS3 = 270.98
HPLC retention time: 2.97 min Protocol B:
To a suspension of AREl 11 (2g, 7.37mmol) in ethanol (30ml) was added concentrated hydrochloric acid (0.75ml) and 30% hydrogen peroxide (2ml). The reaction mixture was .heated under reflux in an oil bath for two hours while the yellow suspension turned white. The resulting precipitate was collected by filtration and washed with ethanol to give the hydrochloride salt that was then suspended in ethanol (20ml) and treated with 28- 30%) ammonium hydroxide (1ml) to yield the free base. The reaction mixture was stirred at room temperature for 20 min then the resulting precipitate was collected by filtration, washed with ethanol and dried to give the compound AREl 12 (1.304g, yield = 66%) as a yellowish solid. MS (ES+): m/z (%): 270 (M+H, 100)
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 270.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C9H7N3OS3 = 268.98
HPLC retention time: 2.36 min
Preparation 2
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE113 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-benzamide and
ARE114 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazor2,l-cl-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-benzamide
The procedure of Protocol A above was followed, using benzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride, to yield AREl 13 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 266.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C11H11N3OS2 = 265.02
HPLC retention time: 3.29 min
The procedure of Protocol B above was followed, using AREl 13 instead of AREl 11, to yield AREl 14 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 263.8 (M+H, 61) Calculated for CuH9N3OS2 = 263.02
HPLC retention time: 2.53 min
Preparation 3
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE115 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoIidine-l-carbothioyl)-4-trifluoromethylbenzamide and ARE116 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-4- trifluoromethylbenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 4-(trifluoromethyl)benzoyl chloride instead of thiophen-2-carbonyl chloride to yield AREl 15 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 173.0 (100), 334.2 (M+H, 83) Calculated for
Figure imgf000092_0001
HPLC retention time: 3.69 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 15 instead of AREl 11 to yield AREl 16 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%):332.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C12H12F3N3OS2 = 331.01
HPLC retention time: 3.28 min
Preparation 4
Preparation and Analysis of
AREl 17 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoIidine-l-carbothioyl)-4-tert-butylbenzamide and
ARE118 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazor2,l-c1-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yMdene)-4-tert- butylbenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 4-tert-butylbenzoyl chloride instead of thioρhene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 17 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 161.0 (100), 322.0 (M+H, 53) Calculated for C15H19N3OS2
= 321.45
HPLC retention time: 3.97 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 17 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 18 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 320.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C15H17N3OS2 = 319.45
HPLC retention time: 3.72 min
Preparation 5
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE119 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoUdine-l-carbothioyl)-4-chlorobenzamide and
ARE120 N-(5,6-dmydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-y ene)-4-chlorobenzamide
Protocol A was followed using -4-chlorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 19 as a yellowish solid. Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 139.0 (100), 300.0 (M+H, 56) Calculated for C11H10CIN3OS2 = 298.98
HPLC retention time: 3.52 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 19 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 120 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 139.0 (100), 298.0 (M+H, 72) Calculated for CnH8ClN3OS2
= 296.98
HPLC retention time: 3.01 min
Preparation 6
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE121 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-4-methoxybenzamide and
ARE122 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c1-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-4-methoxybenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 4-methoxybenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE121 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 135.0 (100), 296.2 (M+H, 39) Calculated for C12H13N3O2S2
= 295.03
HPLC retention time 3.37 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE 121 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 122 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 294.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C12H11N3O2S2 = 293.03
HPLC retention time: 2.89 min
Preparation 7
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE123 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-3-methoxybenzamide and
ARE124 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-cl-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-3-methoxybenzamide Protocol A was followed using 3-methoxybenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-
carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE123 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 135.2 (100), 296.2 (M+H, 53) Calculated for C12H-.3N3O2S2
= 295.03
HPLC retention time: 3.20 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE123 instead of AREl 11 to yield ARE124 as a
white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 294.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C12HnN3O2S2 = 293.03
HPLC retention time: 2.94 min
Preparation 8
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE125 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-3-methylbenzamide and
ARE126 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-3-methylbenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 3-methylbenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE125 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 119.4 (100), 280.0 (M+H, 47) Calculated for C12H13N3OS2
= 279.03
HPLC retention time: 3.59 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE 125 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE126 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 278.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C12HπN3OS2 = 277.03
HPLC retention time: 3.11 min
Preparation 9
Preparation and Analysis of ARE127 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-4-fluorobenzamide and ARE N-(5,6-dmydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yUdene)-4-fluorobenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 4-ffuorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE 127 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 123.2 (100), 284.2 (M+H, 75) Calculated for CιιH10FN3OS2 =
283.01
Protocol B was followed using ARE127 instead of AREl 11 to compound ARE128 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 123.2 (100), 282.2 (M+H, 90) Calculated for CπH8FN3OS2 =
281.01
HPLC retention time: 2.68 min
Preparation 10
Preparation an Analysis of
ARE129 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-3-fluorobenzamide and
ARE130 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-3-fluorobenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 3-fluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE 129 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 123.2 (100), 284.3 (M+H, 61) Calculated for C11H10FN3OS2 =
283.01
HPLC retention time: 3.24 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE 129 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
AREl 30 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 282.2 (M+H, 100) Calculated for CπH8FN3OS2 = 281.01
HPLC retention time: 2.97 min Preparation 11
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE131 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-2-fluorobenzamide and
ARE132 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yUdene)-2-fluorobenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 2-fluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-
carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 31 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 123.2 (100), 284.0 (M+H, 67) Calculated for C11H10FN3OS2 =
283.01
HPLC retention time: 3.07 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE131 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 132 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 282.2 (M+H, 100) Calculated for CπH8FN3OS2 = 281.01
HPLC retention time: 2.72 min
Preparation 12
Preparation an Analysis of
ARE133 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoIidine-l-carbothioyl)-2,4-difluorobenzamide nd ARE134 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-y ene)-2,4- difluorobenzamide
Protocol A was followed using 2,4-difluorobenzoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE133 as a yellow solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 141.0 (100), 302.2 (M+H, 39) Calculated for CπH9F2N3OS2 =
301.00
HPLC retention time: 3.23 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE133 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
ARE 134 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 300.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for CπH7F2N3OS2 = 299.00 HPLC retention time: 2.86 min
Preparation 13
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE135 N-(2-thioxo-imidazoIidine-l-carbothioyl)-naphthyl-2-carboxamide and ARE136 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c1-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yhdene)-naphthyl- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using 2-naphthoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 35 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 155.0(100), 316.0 (M+H, 56) Calculated for
C153N3OS2 = 315.40
HPLC retention time: 3.88 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 35 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 36 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 314.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C15HnN3OS2 = 313.40
HPLC retention time: 3.41 min
Preparation 14
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE137 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)- naphthyl-1-carboxamide and
ARE138 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-cl-l,2,4-dithiazoI-3-ylidene)- naphthyl-l- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using 1-naphthoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 37 as a yellow solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 155.0 (100), 316.0 (M+H, 39) Calculated for
C15H13N3OS2 = 315.40
HPLC retention time: 3.80 min Protocol B will be followed using ARE137 instead of AREl 11 to yield ARE138 as a
white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 314.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C15H13N3OS2 = 313.05
HPLC retention time: 3.38 min
Preparation 15
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE139 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)- benzothiophen-2-carboxamide and
ARE140 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-benzothiophen-2- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using benzo[b]thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride, to yield compound AREl 39 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum*: m/z (%): 160.8 (100), 321.8 (M+H, 51) Calculated for
Figure imgf000099_0001
HPLC retention time: 3.92 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 39 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE140 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 320.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C13H9N3OS3 = 318.99
HPLC retention time: 3.47 min
Preparation 16
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE143 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-furan-2-carboxamide and ARE144 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yUdene)-furan-2- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using 2-furoyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE143 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 256.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C9H9N3O2S2 = 255.00 HPLC retention time: 2.86 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE 143 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
ARE144 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 254.2 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C9H9N3O2S2 = 253.00
HPLC retention time: 2.13 min
Preparation 17
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE148 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yMdene)-2,5- dimethylisoxazole-4-carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using 2,5-dimethylisoxazole-4-carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound N-(2-tm^xo-inήdazolidine-l-carbothioyl)- 2,5-dimetliylisoxazole-4-carboxamide as a yellowish solid.
Protocol B was then followed using the above compound instead of AREl 11 to yield compound ARE 148 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 283.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C10H10N4O2S2 = 282.02
HPLC retention time: 2.53 min
Preparation 18
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE149 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-isoxazole-3-carboxamide and ARE150 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-ylidene)-isoxazole-3- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using isoxazole-3 -carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE149 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 257.0 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C8H8N4O2S2 = 255.99
HPLC retention time: 2.76 min Protocol B was followed using ARE149 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
ARE 150 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 255.2 (M+H, 100) Calculated for C8H6N4O2S2 = 253.99
HPLC retention time: 2.09 min
Preparation 19
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE151 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-2-(4-chlorophenyI)-3-
(trifluoromethyl)pyrazole-4-carboxamide and
ARE152 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazoT2,l-cl-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yMene)- 2-(4-chlorophenyl)-
3-(trifluoromethyl)pyrazole-4-carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using 2-(4-clτlorophenyl)-3-(rrifluoromethyl)pyrazole-4-
carbonyl cliloride instead of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 51 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 273.0 (100), 434.0 (M+H, 76) Calculated for
5H11ClF3N4O2S2 = 432.99
HPLC retention time: 4.25 min
Protocol B was followed using AREl 51 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound
ARE 152 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 431.8 (M+H, 100) Calculated for
C15H9ClF3N5OS2 = 431.8
HPLC retention time: 3.77 min
Preparation 20
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE153 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-2-(4-chlorophenyl)-3-
(trifluoromethyl)pyrazole-4-carboxamide Protocol A was followed using 2-methyl-5-phenylisoxazole-4-carbonyl chloride instead
of thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 53 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 344.8 (100), (M+H, 100) Calculated for
C15H12N4O2S2 = 344.42
HPLC retention time: 4.57 min
Preparation 21
Preparation and Analysis of ARE154 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-pyridine-2-methylthio-3-carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using pyridine2-methylthio-3-carbonyl chloride instead of
thiophene-2-carbonyl chloride to yield compound AREl 54 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m z (%): 152.2 (100), 313.2 (M+H, 100) Calculated for CπH12N4OS3 =
312.02
HPLC retention time: 3.31 min
Preparation 22
Preparation and Analysis of
ARE155 N-(2-thioxo-imidazolidine-l-carbothioyl)-pyridine-3-carboxamide nd ARE156 N-(5,6-dihydro-3H-imidazo[2,l-c]-l,2,4-dithiazol-3-yadene)-pyridine-3- carboxamide
Protocol A was followed using pyridine-3 -carbonyl chloride instead of thiophene-2- carbonyl chloride to yield compound ARE155 as a yellowish solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 165.0 (100), 267.0 (M+H, 50) Calculated for C10H10N4OS2 = 266.03 HPLC retention time: 2.29 min
Protocol B was followed using ARE 155 instead of AREl 11 to yield compound AREl 56 as a white solid.
Mass spectrum: m/z (%): 265.0 (M+H, 100)
Calculated for C10H8N4OS2 = 264.01
HPLC retention time: 1.87 min
Different embodiments of the invention will consist of different constitutively active receptors, expression systems, different assays, and different compounds. Those skilled i the art will understand which receptors to use with which expression systems and assay methods. All are considered within the scope of the teaching of this invention. In addition, those skilled in the art will recognize that various modifications, additions, substitutions, and variations to the illustrative examples set forth herein can be made without departing from the spirit of the invention and are, therefore, considered within the scope of the invention. Indeed, with the assay systems disclosed above, as well as the relationship between the receptor GPR6 and feeding behavior, one of ordinary skill in the art is readily credited with the ability to directly identify small molecule inverse agonists, agonists and partial agonists to the receptor - for example, we note that the phrase "small molecule GPR6 inverse agonist" is not limited by the specific compounds disclosed herein.
All patent documents, applications, and printed publications cited throughout this patent document, including provisional applications and regular patent applications, unless otherwise indicated, are incorporated herein i their entirety by reference. Modifications and extension of the disclosed inventions that are within the purview of the skilled artisan are encompassed within the above disclosure and the claims that follow.

Claims

What is claimed is:
1. A small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist.
2. A method for modulating by inverse agonism the G protein-coupled receptor, GPR6, comprising the step of contacting GPR6 with a small molecule GPR6 inverse agonist.
3. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000104_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and
wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain
selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR134, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13> CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3> N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H-7, SC4H7, SC H9, SC5H9, SC Hl l3 SC6Hn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R 3 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring, said aryl ring being substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered cyclic structure which may be either saturated or unsaturated and that may contain up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hπ, OC63, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H 3,, SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2; or
wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent
positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2)SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
4. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000107_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14,
and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2(
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure;
R and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl andr alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl, and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position on said aryl, each said position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CCI3, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6Hi3, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5H„, SC6Hn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3; SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring, said aryl ring being substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH CH , CH2CH2) SCH S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered cyclic structure which may be either saturated or unsaturated and that may contain up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3;N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5H11, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2; or wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent
positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a
chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a
bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
5. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000110_0001
wherein R1, R , R , R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C -8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, allcylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6Ho, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2G,H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hn, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5) , CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2; SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H , OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OCsHπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC Hll5 SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H-7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloallcyl or cycloallcylalkyl, andC2-8 allcenyl. The method of claim 2 wherein the GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000114_0001
wherein R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following;
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NPv15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain
selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl,
branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; R12 is selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNRi3R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, allcylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3) N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2G|H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hn, SCβHn, SC6Hi3„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2;SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 may form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13)CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hu, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC H , SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SCeHπ,, SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3> CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH-2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Cι-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, andC2-8 allcenyl;
7. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000117_0001
wherein at least one of V, , X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the proviso that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR!3R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hn, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R1 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R1 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CCι3, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3>N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6H„, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC H13„ SCF , SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H-7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH CH2; CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
8. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000120_0001
wherein at least one of V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the proviso that at least two of V, , X, Y and Z are other than N;
R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3..8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6; R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched alkyl,
C2-8 aikenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3) N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H , SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13,CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3! SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H-7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R1 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R is selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C -s cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, and C2-s alkenyl.
The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1, structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000124_0001
wherein at least one of V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z
that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the proviso that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N;
R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14,
and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form abi-cyclic structure;
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, alkylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO^^g, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SCβHn, SC6Hi3„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3>CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5) , CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2)SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NΗCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hn, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC H7, SC4H9, SC H9, SC5Hll5 SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on
said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight .chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-s alkenyl.
10. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000127_0001
wherein at least one of V, W, X, Y and Z is selected from N and each of V, W, X, Y, and Z that is/are not N are independently selected from CR1, CR2, CR3, CR4, and CR5, with the
proviso that at least two of V, W, X, Y and Z are other than N; R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14, NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12, OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3, PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2! CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R , R , R , and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-s cycloalkyl, C -g alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNRoR14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, cycloalkyl, allcylcycloalkyl, cycloalkylalkyl, aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CHzaryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NΗCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6Hi3, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from: F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH,
NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3,
■ NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H*;, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7,
OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H11, OCβHn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5,
OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH,
SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC H7, SC H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hll5 SC15H0,, SCF3,
SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C H9)2, and
wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on
said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2> SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9
alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-s alkenyl.
11. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000131_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR4, O and S; , X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR1, CR2, and CR3, with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R , R2, R3, R4, and Rs can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2; SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C -8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13Rι , (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or allcylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H , OSO2C H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hll5 SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 fonn part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2j CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
12. The method of claim 2 wherein said small mlecule, GPR6 inverse agomst is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000134_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR , O and S;
W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR1, CR2, and CR3, with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR1 )3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R , R and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R is selected from H, Cι_8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C -8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH )mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylallcyl, or aryl and CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H , SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hl l5 SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9? SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3> SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2> CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2>SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H„, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hll5 SCeHo,, SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2) SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
13. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000137_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR4, O and S; , X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR , CR2, and CR3, with the provisio that when Z is O and Y is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, GC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2) SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3..8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2.8- allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-s cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C2-s allcenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (C^nNRnRπ, (CH2)mSO3H, (CH2)mCO H wherein n is 2 through 6 or m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloallcyl, or allcylcycloalkyl, or cycloallcylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CHbaryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hn, SCeHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3) , CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2,
NΗC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH,
NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3,
NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7,
OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5H11, OCeHn, OC63, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5,
OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH,
SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC H9, SC5H9, SC5Hll5 SC6Hll5 SC6H13„ SCF3,
SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2) SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, and C2_s alkenyl.
14. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000139_0001
wherein Z is selected from NR4, O and S;
W, X, or Y are independently selected from N, CR , CR , and CR , with the proviso that when Z is O and Y is N, then is CR1 and X is CR2 ;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2! CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3..8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C -8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR134, (CH2)mSO H, (CH2)mCO2H wherein n is 2 through 6 or m is 1 through 6; R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C2-8 allcenyl or cycloallcyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3) N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H-7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hu, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H-7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NΗSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OCsHn, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5,
OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH,
SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3,
SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7,
SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3,
COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9,
CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
. CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from
CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2! CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S,
SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form abi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 allcenyl.
15. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000142_0001
wherein Y is selected from NR , O or S;
W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that
when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2; R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2>
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl; R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13Ri4, (CH )mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloallcyl, or alkylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C49, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SC6Hll5 CόH^,, SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC H , SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4B9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6H„, OC6H13, -OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC55 SC Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3> CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to fonn a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
16. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000146_0001
wherein Y is selected from NR4, O or S;
W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2;
1 7 ^
R , R , and R are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12, OPO(OR12)2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R is H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R , R and R are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-s alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR13R14, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6; R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, Ci-s straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 allcenyl or cycloalkyl, or allcylcycloalkyl, or cycloalkylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hu, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hn, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3> SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3FI7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCHs, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hn, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H 3„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO-3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 fonn an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2; CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R15 is selected from H, Ci_8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
17. The small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist of claim 1 structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000150_0001
wherein Y is selected from NR4, O or S;
W, X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NR13R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,
SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure;
R4 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4- alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C -9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-g allcylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 alkenyl, aiyl, alkylaryl, (CH^nNRπRu, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 sfraight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 alkenyl or cycloalkyl, or allcylcycloalkyl, or cycloallcylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5,
N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3,
NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7,
NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hu,
OC6Hi3, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5,
OSO2C3H7, OSOaC^g, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ,
SC5H11, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3,
SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3 H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5,
SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7,
COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7,
CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2,SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 form part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13,CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3,N(CH3)2,
NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2,
NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H-7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6H„, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5H„, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3, CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2; SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and R15 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C2-8 alkenyl.
18. The method of claim 2 wherein the small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist is structurally represented as follows:
Figure imgf000154_0001
wherein Y is selected from NR , O or S; , X, or Z are each independently selected from N or CR1, CR2, or CR3' with the proviso that when Y is O and Z is N, then W is CR1 and X is CR2;
R1, R2, and R3 are each independently selected from the following:
H, F, Cl, Br, I, R12, CF3, CF2R12, CF2CF2, CC13, CC12R12, CC12CC12R12, NR13R14,
NR15COR12, NR15SO2R12, OR12, OCF3, OCF2R12, OCF2CF2R12, OCOR12, OSO2R12,
OPO(OR12) 2, SR12, SCF3, SCF2R12, SCF2CF2R12, SCOR12, SO3R12, SO2NRI3R14, PO(OR12)3,
PO(OR12)2R12, NO2, CN, CNR15(NR13R14), CNR15(SR12), COOR12, COSR12, CONR13R14, and wherein any two adjacent positions of R1, R2, R3, R4, and R5 can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; R4 is selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloallcyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C -8 alkenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, COR5, CSR5, and SO2R5;
R5, R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylallcyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R6 and R7 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain allcyl, branched alkyl, C -8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl
R8, R9, R10, and R11 are each independently selected from H, C1-8 straight chain allcyl, branched allcyl, C3-s cycloalkyl, C4-9 allcylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C2-8 allcenyl, aryl and alkylaryl;
R12 is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched allcyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloallcylalkyl, C -8 allcenyl, aryl, alkylaryl, (CH2)nNR134, (CH2)mSO3H, and (CH2)mCO2H, wherein n is 2 through 6 and m is 1 through 6;
R13 and R14 are each independently selected from H, Cι-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C2-8 allcenyl or cycloalkyl, or allcylcycloalkyl, or cycloallcylalkyl, or aryl or CH2aryl, wherein each said aryl group or said aryl portion of said CH2aryl group may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13) CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3, N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9, NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3, OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hu, OC6Hπ, OC6H13, OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3, OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC H5, SC3H , SC4H7, SC4H9, SC5H9, SCsHπ, SCβHn, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5, SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9, SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3, SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2, SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN, COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5, COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3,CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5, CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and/or R14 contain an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2) CHCHCH2, CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2, SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, or OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; or
R13 and R14 fonn part of a 5, 6 or 7 membered saturated cyclic structure or 5,6 or 7 membered unsaturated cyclic structure, each such structure optionally containing up to four heteroatoms selected from O, N and S and wherein each said cyclic structure may be optionally substituted by up to four substituents in any position, each position independently selected from:
F, Cl, Br, I, CF3, CC13, CH3, C2H5, C3H7, C4H9, NH2, NHCH3 N(CH3)2, NHC2H5, N(C2H5)2, NHC3H7, N(C3H7)2, NHC4H9, N(C4H9)2, NHCOH, NHCOCH3, NHCOC2H5, NHCOC3H7, NHCOC4H9,
NHSO2CH3, NHSO2C2H5, NHSO2C3H7, NHSO2C4H9, OH, OCH3,
OC2H5, OC3H7, OC4H7, OC4H9, OC5H9, OC5Hπ, OC6Hπ, OC6H13,
OCF3, OCOCH3, OCOC2H5, OCOC3H7, OCOC4H9, OSO2CH3,
OSO2C2H5, OSO2C3H7, OSO2C4H9, SH, SCH3, SC2H5, SC3H7, SC4H7,
SC4H9, SC5H9, SC5Hπ, SC6Hπ, SC6H13„ SCF3, SCOCH3, SCOC2H5,
SCOC3H7, SCOC4H9, SO3CH3, SO3C2H5, SO3C3H7, SO3C4H9,
SO2NH2, SO2NHCH3) SO2N(CH3)2, SO2NHC2H5, SO2N(C2H5)2,
SO2NHC3H7, SO2N(C3H7)2, SO2NHC4H9, SO2N(C4H9)2, NO2, CN,
COOCH3, COOC2H5, COOC3H7, COOC4H9, COSCH3, COSC2H5,
COSC3H7, COSC4H9, CONH2, CONHCH3) CON(CH3)2, CONHC2H5,
CON(C2H5)2, CONHC3H7, CON(C3H7)2, CONHC4H9, CON(C4H9)2, and wherein when R13 and R14 form an aryl ring substituted at two adjacent positions on said aryl ring, then said two adjacent positions can be joined by a chain selected from CHCHCHCH, CH2CH2CH2CH2, CHCHCH2,
CH2CH2CH2, CH2CH2> SCH2S, SCH2CH2S, OCH2O, and OCH2CH2O to form a bi-cyclic structure; and
R1S is selected from H, C1-8 straight chain alkyl, branched alkyl, C3-8 cycloalkyl, C4-9 alkylcycloalkyl or cycloalkylalkyl, and C -8 alkenyl.
19. A small molecule, GPR6 inverse agonist selected from the group consisting of the following structures: AREl 11 ARE112
Figure imgf000158_0001
ARE113 ARE114
Figure imgf000158_0002
ARE115 ARE116
Figure imgf000158_0003
ARE117 ARE118
Figure imgf000158_0004
ARE119 ARE120
Figure imgf000158_0005
ARE121 ARE122
Figure imgf000159_0001
ARE123 ARE124
Figure imgf000159_0002
ARE125 ARE126
Figure imgf000159_0003
ARE129 ARE130
ARE131 ARE132
Figure imgf000159_0005
Figure imgf000160_0001
ARE135 ARE136
Figure imgf000160_0002
ARE137 ARE138
Figure imgf000160_0003
ARE139 ARE140
Figure imgf000160_0004
ARE141 ARE142
Figure imgf000160_0005
ARE143 ARE144
Figure imgf000161_0001
ARE145 ARE146
Figure imgf000161_0002
ARE149 ARE150
Figure imgf000161_0003
ARE151 ARE152
Figure imgf000161_0004
ARE153 ARE154
Figure imgf000162_0001
Figure imgf000162_0002
20. A method for modulating by inverse agonism the G protein-coupled receptor, GPR6, comprising the step of contacting GPR6 with a small molecule GPR6 inverse agonist selected from the group consisting of:
AREl 11 ARE112
Figure imgf000162_0003
AREl 13 ARE114
Figure imgf000162_0004
ARE115 ARE116
Figure imgf000163_0001
ARE117 ARE118
Figure imgf000163_0002
ARE119 ARE120
Figure imgf000163_0003
ARE121 ARE122
Figure imgf000163_0004
ARE123 ARE124
Figure imgf000163_0005
ARE125 ARE126
Figure imgf000164_0001
ARE127 ARE128
Figure imgf000164_0002
ARE129 ARE130
Figure imgf000164_0003
ARE131 ARE132
ARE133 ARE134
Figure imgf000164_0005
ARE135 ARE136
Figure imgf000165_0001
ARE139 ARE140
Figure imgf000165_0002
ARE141 ARE142
Figure imgf000165_0003
ARE143 ARE144
Figure imgf000165_0004
ARE145 ARE146
Figure imgf000165_0005
ARE147 ARE148
Figure imgf000166_0001
ARE149 ARE150
Figure imgf000166_0002
ARE151 ARE152
Figure imgf000166_0003
ARE153 ARE154
Figure imgf000166_0004
ARE155 ARE156
Figure imgf000166_0005
PCT/US2000/004945 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six Ceased WO2001062765A2 (en)

Priority Applications (7)

Application Number Priority Date Filing Date Title
JP2001562547A JP2004515449A (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulator of 6G protein-coupled receptor
CA002368447A CA2368447A1 (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six
MXPA01008618A MXPA01008618A (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six.
KR1020017010819A KR20020015307A (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small Molecule Modulators of G Protein-Coupled Receptor Six
AU64535/01A AU6453501A (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of G protein-coupled receptor six
IL14493400A IL144934A0 (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six
EP00993678A EP1200427A2 (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six (gpr6)

Applications Claiming Priority (6)

Application Number Priority Date Filing Date Title
US12185199P 1999-02-26 1999-02-26
US60/121,851 1999-02-26
US17385099P 1999-12-30 1999-12-30
US60/173,850 1999-12-30
US17442800P 2000-01-04 2000-01-04
US60/174,428 2000-01-04

Publications (2)

Publication Number Publication Date
WO2001062765A2 true WO2001062765A2 (en) 2001-08-30
WO2001062765A3 WO2001062765A3 (en) 2002-03-07

Family

ID=27382687

Family Applications (1)

Application Number Title Priority Date Filing Date
PCT/US2000/004945 Ceased WO2001062765A2 (en) 1999-02-26 2000-02-25 Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six

Country Status (6)

Country Link
JP (1) JP2004515449A (en)
KR (1) KR20020015307A (en)
CN (1) CN1364167A (en)
AU (1) AU6453501A (en)
MX (1) MXPA01008618A (en)
WO (1) WO2001062765A2 (en)

Cited By (8)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
WO2003078602A3 (en) * 2002-03-15 2004-04-01 Arena Pharm Inc Methods of expressing non-endogenous g protein coupled receptors in cells
WO2004038416A1 (en) * 2002-10-24 2004-05-06 Bayer Healthcare Ag Diagnostics and therapeutics for diseases associated with human g-protein coupled receptor 6 (gpr6)
WO2004047776A1 (en) * 2002-11-20 2004-06-10 L'oreal Composition for hair care or eyelashes containing a pyrazol-carboxamide, its use for stimulating hair and eyelash growth and/or for preventing loss thereof
EP2267458A2 (en) 2004-04-20 2010-12-29 Galapagos N.V. Methods, compositions and compound assays for inhibiting amyloid-beta protein production
WO2015095728A1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2015-06-25 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
JP2017509601A (en) * 2014-02-14 2017-04-06 武田薬品工業株式会社 GPR6 pyrazine modulator
US11535660B1 (en) 2018-03-23 2022-12-27 Cannot Therapeutics, Inc. Modulators of G-protein coupled receptors
US12281149B2 (en) 2021-05-13 2025-04-22 Carmot Therapeutics, Inc. Modulators of G-protein coupled receptors

Families Citing this family (1)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
AU2007215015B2 (en) * 2006-02-15 2013-11-21 Dendreon Corporation Small-molecule modulators of Trp-p8 activity

Family Cites Families (1)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
AR016817A1 (en) * 1997-08-14 2001-08-01 Smithkline Beecham Plc DERIVATIVES OF FENILUREA OR FENILTIOUREA, PROCEDURE FOR PREPARATION, COLLECTION OF COMPOUNDS, INTERMEDIARY COMPOUNDS, PHARMACEUTICAL COMPOSITION, METHOD OF TREATMENT AND USE OF SUCH COMPOUNDS FOR THE MANUFACTURE OF A MEDICINAL PRODUCT

Cited By (23)

* Cited by examiner, † Cited by third party
Publication number Priority date Publication date Assignee Title
WO2003078602A3 (en) * 2002-03-15 2004-04-01 Arena Pharm Inc Methods of expressing non-endogenous g protein coupled receptors in cells
WO2004038416A1 (en) * 2002-10-24 2004-05-06 Bayer Healthcare Ag Diagnostics and therapeutics for diseases associated with human g-protein coupled receptor 6 (gpr6)
WO2004047776A1 (en) * 2002-11-20 2004-06-10 L'oreal Composition for hair care or eyelashes containing a pyrazol-carboxamide, its use for stimulating hair and eyelash growth and/or for preventing loss thereof
EP2267458A2 (en) 2004-04-20 2010-12-29 Galapagos N.V. Methods, compositions and compound assays for inhibiting amyloid-beta protein production
EP2270513A2 (en) 2004-04-20 2011-01-05 Galapagos N.V. Methods, compositions and compound assays for inhibiting amyloid-beta protein production
EP3453709A1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2019-03-13 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
TWI730937B (en) 2013-12-20 2021-06-21 日商武田藥品工業有限公司 Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
AU2014368992A1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2016-07-07 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of GPR6
CN105829309A (en) * 2013-12-20 2016-08-03 武田药品工业株式会社 Tetrahydropyridopyrazine modulators of GPR6
KR20160099705A (en) * 2013-12-20 2016-08-22 다케다 야쿠힌 고교 가부시키가이샤 Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
TWI809395B (en) 2013-12-20 2023-07-21 日商武田藥品工業有限公司 Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
US9708313B2 (en) 2013-12-20 2017-07-18 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Substituted pyrido[3,4-b]pyrazines as GPR6 modulators
AU2014368992B2 (en) * 2013-12-20 2018-09-13 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of GPR6
US10077266B2 (en) 2013-12-20 2018-09-18 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Substituted pyrido[3,4-b]pyrazines as GPR6 modulators
AU2014368992C1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2019-02-21 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of GPR6
WO2015095728A1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2015-06-25 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Tetrahydropyridopyrazines modulators of gpr6
EA032443B1 (en) * 2013-12-20 2019-05-31 Такеда Фармасьютикал Компани Лимитед Tetrahydropyridopyrazines as modulators of gpr6
US10738046B2 (en) 2013-12-20 2020-08-11 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Substituted pyrido[3,4-b]pyrazines as GPR6 modulators
US9181249B2 (en) 2013-12-20 2015-11-10 Takeda Pharmaceutical Company Limited Substituted pyrido[3,4-b]pyrazines as GPR6 modulators
KR102441531B1 (en) 2013-12-20 2022-09-07 다케다 야쿠힌 고교 가부시키가이샤 Tetrahydropyridopyrazine modulators of GPR6
JP2017509601A (en) * 2014-02-14 2017-04-06 武田薬品工業株式会社 GPR6 pyrazine modulator
US11535660B1 (en) 2018-03-23 2022-12-27 Cannot Therapeutics, Inc. Modulators of G-protein coupled receptors
US12281149B2 (en) 2021-05-13 2025-04-22 Carmot Therapeutics, Inc. Modulators of G-protein coupled receptors

Also Published As

Publication number Publication date
KR20020015307A (en) 2002-02-27
CN1364167A (en) 2002-08-14
MXPA01008618A (en) 2002-03-20
JP2004515449A (en) 2004-05-27
WO2001062765A3 (en) 2002-03-07
AU6453501A (en) 2001-09-03

Similar Documents

Publication Publication Date Title
TWI486338B (en) Agents for preventing and treating disorders involving modulation of the ryr receptors
JP6604664B2 (en) Compounds active against nuclear receptors
US20030191164A1 (en) Propane-1,3-dione derivatives
EP1407774A1 (en) 2-Amino-4-quinazolinones as LXR nuclear receptor binding compounds
EP1813606A1 (en) Amide compound
EP2010521A1 (en) Indazole compounds and methods for inhibition of cdc7
EP1398032A1 (en) 4-Oxo-quinazolines as LXR nuclear receptor binding compounds
EP1592389B1 (en) Piperazine-2-carboxamide derivatives
JP2007516298A (en) Novel spiroindoline or spiroisoquinoline compounds, methods of use and compositions thereof
EP1144409A2 (en) Phenyl urea and phenyl thiourea derivatives
KR20150037877A (en) Bifluorodioxalane-amino-benzimidazole kinase inhibitors for the treatment of cancer, autoimmune inflammation and cns disorders
US6426357B1 (en) Antagonists of follicle stimulating hormone activity
EP3271338B1 (en) Triazole derivatives and their use as pde4 activators
EP3519403B1 (en) Compounds and their use as pde4 activators
CN102123993A (en) Imine derivatives as cannabinoid receptor ligands
CA3215958A1 (en) Hdac6 inhibitors for use in the treatment of dilated cardiomyopathy
JP2017197564A (en) TRPM8 antagonist
WO2001062765A2 (en) Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six
US6420563B1 (en) Small molecule modulators of G protein-coupled receptor six
US20210040098A1 (en) Apelin receptor agonists and methods of use thereof
CA2584225A1 (en) Compositions for treating flushing and lipid-associated disorders comprising niacin receptor partial agonists
EP1200427A2 (en) Small molecule modulators of g protein-coupled receptor six (gpr6)
EP1150664A2 (en) Novel use of orexin receptor antagonists
ZA200107163B (en) Small molecule modulators of G protein-coupled receptor six.
WO2005011677A1 (en) 5-substituted 2h-pyrazole-3-carboxylic acid derivatives as agonists for the nicotinic acid receptor rup25 for the treatment of dyslipidemia and related diseases

Legal Events

Date Code Title Description
WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 00804342.6

Country of ref document: CN

WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 513586

Country of ref document: NZ

Ref document number: 144934

Country of ref document: IL

ENP Entry into the national phase

Ref document number: 2001 562547

Country of ref document: JP

Kind code of ref document: A

ENP Entry into the national phase

Ref document number: 2368447

Country of ref document: CA

Ref document number: 2368447

Country of ref document: CA

Kind code of ref document: A

WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 64535/01

Country of ref document: AU

Ref document number: 1020017010819

Country of ref document: KR

Ref document number: PA/a/2001/008618

Country of ref document: MX

WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 2001/07163

Country of ref document: ZA

Ref document number: 200107163

Country of ref document: ZA

AK Designated states

Kind code of ref document: A2

Designated state(s): AE AL AM AT AU AZ BA BB BG BR BY CA CH CN CR CU CZ DE DK DM EE ES FI GB GD GE GH GM HR HU ID IL IN IS JP KE KG KP KR KZ LC LK LR LS LT LU LV MA MD MG MK MN MW MX NO NZ PL PT RO RU SD SE SG SI SK SL TJ TM TR TT TZ UA UG US UZ VN YU ZA ZW

AL Designated countries for regional patents

Kind code of ref document: A2

Designated state(s): GH GM KE LS MW SD SL SZ TZ UG ZW AM AZ BY KG KZ MD RU TJ TM AT BE CH CY DE DK ES FI FR GB GR IE IT LU MC NL PT SE BF BJ CF CG CI CM GA GN GW ML MR NE SN TD TG

WWE Wipo information: entry into national phase

Ref document number: 2000993678

Country of ref document: EP

121 Ep: the epo has been informed by wipo that ep was designated in this application
REG Reference to national code

Ref country code: DE

Ref legal event code: 8642

DFPE Request for preliminary examination filed prior to expiration of 19th month from priority date (pct application filed before 20040101)
WWP Wipo information: published in national office

Ref document number: 1020017010819

Country of ref document: KR

AK Designated states

Kind code of ref document: A3

Designated state(s): AE AL AM AT AU AZ BA BB BG BR BY CA CH CN CR CU CZ DE DK DM EE ES FI GB GD GE GH GM HR HU ID IL IN IS JP KE KG KP KR KZ LC LK LR LS LT LU LV MA MD MG MK MN MW MX NO NZ PL PT RO RU SD SE SG SI SK SL TJ TM TR TT TZ UA UG US UZ VN YU ZA ZW

AL Designated countries for regional patents

Kind code of ref document: A3

Designated state(s): GH GM KE LS MW SD SL SZ TZ UG ZW AM AZ BY KG KZ MD RU TJ TM AT BE CH CY DE DK ES FI FR GB GR IE IT LU MC NL PT SE BF BJ CF CG CI CM GA GN GW ML MR NE SN TD TG

WWP Wipo information: published in national office

Ref document number: 2000993678

Country of ref document: EP

WWW Wipo information: withdrawn in national office

Ref document number: 2000993678

Country of ref document: EP

WWW Wipo information: withdrawn in national office

Ref document number: 1020017010819

Country of ref document: KR